Selected quad for the lemma: faith_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
faith_n church_n scripture_n tradition_n 15,184 5 9.5685 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A13171 The blessings on Mount Gerizzim, and the curses on Movnt Ebal. Or, The happie estate of Protestants compared with the miserable estate of papists vnder the Popes tyrannie. By M.S. Doctor of Diuinitie. Sutcliffe, Matthew, 1550?-1629. 1625 (1625) STC 23466; ESTC S111364 256,182 370

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

and_o profess_a enemy_n who_o in_o diverse_a wicked_a libel_n and_o paltry_a pamphlet_n have_v endeavour_v to_o obscure_v her_o great_a glory_n and_o to_o deface_v her_o worthy_a action_n wherein_o that_o i_o may_v proceed_v with_o more_o perspicuity_n i_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o reason_n first_o of_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a and_o afterward_o of_o civil_a and_o worldly_a affair_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n which_o by_o her_o mean_n grow_v to_o a_o better_a settlement_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v first_o what_o grace_v it_o be_v to_o have_v a_o certainty_n in_o religion_n and_o next_o what_o favour_n god_n show_v to_o we_o reduce_v we_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n three_o we_o will_v reason_v of_o true_a faith_n four_a of_o the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fifthly_o of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n sixthly_a of_o the_o scripture_n and_o public_a prayer_n in_o our_o mother_n tongue_n seven_o of_o freedom_n we_o enjoy_v by_o she_o from_o persecution_n from_o the_o pope_n exaction_n from_o his_o wicked_a law_n and_o unjust_a censure_n from_o all_o heretical_a and_o false_a doctrine_n eight_o of_o deliverance_n from_o schism_n superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o final_o of_o good_a work_n and_o the_o happiness_n of_o those_o that_o not_o only_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v which_o be_v good_a work_n but_o also_o do_v walk_v in_o they_o according_a to_o their_o christian_a profession_n avoid_v pretend_v popish_a good-worke_n that_o be_v either_o impious_a or_o else_o superstitious_a and_o unprofitable_a all_o which_o grace_n this_o land_n have_v long_o enjoy_v by_o her_o majesty_n reformation_n of_o religion_n in_o matter_n political_a we_o purpose_v to_o consider_v first_o the_o happy_a deliverance_n of_o this_o land_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o spaniard_n &_o from_o all_o fear_n of_o foreign_a enemy_n next_o her_o famous_a victory_n both_o against_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n at_o home_n and_o open_a enemy_n abroad_o and_o her_o glory_n and_o reputation_n with_o foreign_a nation_n three_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o royal_a authority_n and_o pre-eminence_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o which_o the_o pope_n before_o that_o have_v usurp_v a_o great_a part_n four_o the_o peaceable_a estate_n of_o this_o kingdom_n in_o the_o tumult_n of_o other_o nation_n round_o about_o we_o and_o last_o the_o wealth_n and_o multitude_n of_o her_o subject_n chap._n i._o of_o certainty_n in_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o union_n we_o have_v with_o the_o true_a ancient_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n faith_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n ii_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v hope_v for_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v if_o then_o we_o have_v true_a say_v we_o be_v assure_v of_o thing_n hope_v for_o although_o not_o see_v when_o two_o of_o the_o disciple_n 24._o of_o christ_n doubt_v of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o o_o fool_n and_o slow_a of_o heart_n to_o believe_v all_o that_o the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v ideo_fw-la fideles_fw-la vocati_fw-la sumus_fw-la say_v chrysostom_n hom._n 1._o in_o 1._o tim_n 4._o ut_fw-la his_fw-la quae_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la haesitatione_n credamus_fw-la therefore_o we_o be_v call_v faithful_a that_o we_o may_v believe_v without_o doubt_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v so_o then_o all_o christian_n that_o believe_v do_v certain_o believe_v and_o be_v persuade_v and_o he_o that_o doubt_v believe_v not_o further_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n be_v most_o certain_a heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v but_o my_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v say_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 24._o saint_n augustine_n do_v attribute_v that_o only_a to_o the_o writer_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n that_o they_o can_v not_o err_v neither_o need_v i_o to_o stand_v long_o upon_o this_o point_n see_v our_o adusrsary_n also_o confess_v that_o nothing_o that_o be_v false_a can_v be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n but_o our_o adversary_n take_v away_o from_o christian_n all_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n for_o first_o they_o teach_v that_o no_o christian_a be_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o second_o they_o make_v man_n faith_n uncertain_a concern_v the_o object_n that_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_v 6._o cap._n 16._o where_o it_o say_v neque_fw-la seipsum_fw-la aliquis_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la nihil_fw-la sibi_fw-la conscius_fw-la sit_fw-la iudicare_fw-la debet_fw-la that_o be_v neither_o aught_o any_o to_o judge_v himself_o although_o he_o be_v not_o conscious_a to_o himself_o of_o any_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o same_o session_n chap._n 9_o it_o determine_v that_o no_o man_n by_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o assure_v himself_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v the_o second_o point_n do_v follow_v of_o the_o diverse_a doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n eckius_fw-la hold_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o authentical_a ecclesia_fw-la without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o although_o bellarmine_n dare_v not_o allow_v this_o form_n of_o speech_n yet_o where_o he_o defend_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n concern_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n in_o effect_n he_o grant_v it_o for_o if_o the_o church_n only_o can_v make_v scripture_n authentical_a then_o without_o the_o church_n authority_n they_o be_v not_o authentical_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles._n c._n 2._o he_o say_v the_o scripture_n depend_v upon_o the_o church_n scriptura_fw-la say_v he_o pendent_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la stapleton_n lib._n 9_o the_o princip_n doctrinal_a cap._n 4._o say_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o church_n authority_n shall_v consign_v and_o declare_v which_o book_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n necessarium_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o ut_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la authoritas_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la canonem_fw-la consignet_fw-la and_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o man_n be_v to_o receive_v any_o book_n for_o canonical_a but_o such_o as_o the_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n shall_v determine_v to_o be_v canonical_a and_o those_o upon_o the_o church_n determination_n he_o will_v have_v necessary_o receive_v second_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n make_v scripture_n 4._o and_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o equal_a value_n bellarmine_n in_o his_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la speak_v no_o otherwise_o of_o tradition_n then_o as_o of_o the_o infallible_a write_a word_n of_o god_n stapleton_n say_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n do_v signify_v all_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v deliver_v and_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o very_o absurd_o 1._o as_o i_o think_v no_o reasonable_a man_n can_v well_o deny_v for_o that_o be_v grant_v the_o rule_n and_o doctrine_n rule_v shall_v be_v all_o one_o but_o of_o that_o we_o shall_v speak_v otherwhere_o three_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n be_v no_o less_o firm_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o reverent_o to_o be_v hold_v then_o if_o they_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n id_fw-la quod_fw-la sancta_fw-la mater_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la definit_a vel_fw-la acceptat_fw-la say_v eckius_fw-la enchir._n cap._n de_fw-la eccles._n non_fw-la est_fw-la minore_fw-la firmitate_fw-la credendum_fw-la ac_fw-la veneratione_n tenendum_fw-la quam_fw-la si_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la literis_fw-la sit_fw-la expressum_fw-la and_o all_o our_o adversary_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o pope_n determination_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_a and_o so_o to_o be_v account_v of_o final_o in_o the_o canon_n law_n c._n in_o canonicis_fw-la do_v 19_o they_o place_v the_o decretal_n of_o pope_n in_o equal_a rank_n with_o canonical_a scripture_n of_o these_o position_n it_o follow_v that_o as_o long_o as_o man_n believe_v the_o romish_a church_n they_o neither_o believe_v truth_n nor_o have_v any_o certain_a faith_n or_o religion_n and_o that_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o argument_n first_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o god_n promise_n concern_v his_o own_o salvation_n be_v a_o infidel_n and_o have_v no_o true_a faith_n but_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o all_o papist_n for_o not_o one_o of_o they_o believe_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v nor_o imagine_v that_o god_n have_v say_v or_o promise_v any_o thing_n concern_v his_o own_o salvation_n second_o if_o the_o scripture_n depend_v upon_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n then_o the_o papist_n believe_v scripture_n with_o humane_a faith_n and_o depend_v upon_o man_n but_o that_o they_o do_v plane_o teach_v three_o if_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o consign_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o rule_v the_o church_n then_o if_o the_o pope_n either_o determine_v against_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o make_v fabulous_a scripture_n equal_a with_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o papist_n be_v to_o believe_v either_o doctrine_n contrary_a or_o diverse_a from_o scripture_n at_o the_o least_o
they_o be_v uncertain_a what_o they_o shall_v believe_v but_o the_o pope_n may_v both_o err_v in_o deny_v scripture_n and_o add_v to_o scripture_n to_o answer_v this_o the_o papist_n be_v drive_v to_o affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v in_o these_o determination_n but_o this_o show_v the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o depend_v upon_o one_o little_a rot_a gouty_a pope_n who_o learning_n be_v not_o worth_a two_o chip_n and_o who_o piety_n be_v less_o than_o his_o learning_n four_o if_o the_o pope_n consignation_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v papist_n believe_v scripture_n then_o be_v their_o faith_n most_o uncertain_a and_o rather_o humane_a then_o divine_a especial_o consider_v that_o of_o this_o pope_n consignation_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n in_o scripture_n but_o that_o be_v their_o doctrine_n five_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o romish_a faith_n must_v needs_o prove_v uncertain_a and_o variable_a the_o consequence_n of_o this_o proposttion_n be_v prove_v for_o that_o both_o schoolman_n differ_v from_o schoolman_n and_o late_a writer_n from_o the_o ancient_a and_o also_o pope_n from_o pope_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr pontiff_a rom._n that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v as_o i_o have_v say_v it_o may_v be_v aver_v by_o stapletons_n word_n six_o if_o say_v be_v ground_v upon_o tradition_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o scripture_n then_o have_v the_o papist_n no_n certain_a faith_n the_o consequence_n be_v plain_a for_o that_o diverse_a ancient_a tradition_n be_v new_a cease_v and_o neither_o caesar_n baronius_n nor_o any_o man_n be_v able_a to_o set_v down_o which_o be_v authentical_a tradition_n which_o not_o final_o if_o the_o faith_n of_o papist_n rest_v upon_o the_o pope_n determination_n or_o else_o upon_o the_o suppose_a catholic_a church_n decree_n then_o be_v their_o faith_n a_o gouty_a frail_a and_o rot_a faith_n or_o rather_o a_o most_o doubtful_a opinion_n for_o neither_o be_v they_o certain_a who_o be_v lawful_a pope_n nor_o that_o his_o determination_n be_v unfallible_a nor_o be_v it_o a_o easy_a matter_n to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n determination_n the_o papist_n themselves_o contend_v and_o vary_v continual_o about_o they_o these_o argument_n do_v show_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v either_o a_o vain_a faith_n or_o else_o no_o faith_n at_o all_o and_o this_o robert_n parson_n notwithstanding_o his_o obstinacy_n and_o perverseness_n must_v needs_o confess_v for_o simple_a papist_n have_v only_o these_o mean_n whereby_o to_o direct_v themselves_o viz._n scripture_n father_n or_o their_o own_o priest_n scripture_n they_o neither_o hear_v read_v in_o a_o tongue_n know_v nor_o do_v they_o much_o regard_v they_o the_o father_n they_o understand_v not_o the_o priest_n do_v often_o tell_v lie_n and_o too_o far_o they_o dwell_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o know_v of_o he_o the_o truth_n to_o omit_v to_o talk_v of_o rude_a person_n and_o to_o talk_v of_o spruce_a robert_n parson_n glad_o will_v i_o know_v of_o he_o how_o he_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o religion_n he_o teach_v be_v true_a scripture_n he_o deny_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v authentical_a without_o the_o pope_n determination_n the_o pope_n be_v but_o one_o man_n if_o then_o he_o rely_v whole_o on_o the_o pope_n determination_n his_o faith_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o foolish_a fancy_n ground_v upon_o one_o man_n if_o upon_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o know_v not_o the_o church_n but_o by_o his_o own_o reason_n and_o sense_n as_o i_o think_v he_o will_v confess_v rule_n of_o faith_n he_o acknowledge_v none_o but_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v not_o only_o absurd_a 6._o but_o make_v much_o against_o he_o absurd_a it_o be_v for_o that_o the_o church_n be_v rule_v and_o be_v not_o the_o rule_n no_o more_o than_o the_o carpenter_n be_v his_o rule_n it_o make_v against_o he_o for_o that_o it_o be_v more_o difficult_a to_o know_v the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o time_n and_o place_n than_o scripture_n or_o any_o proof_n of_o faith_n else_o for_o to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v well_o see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o all_o time_n church_n and_o country_n and_o if_o he_o refer_v himself_o to_o other_o and_o believe_v humane_a history_n his_o faith_n be_v still_o ground_v on_o man_n this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o papist_n and_o of_o their_o agent_n robert_n parson_n we_o may_v esteem_v ourselves_o happy_a that_o be_v deliver_v from_o this_o great_a uncertainty_n and_o teach_v to_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v beside_o that_o 3._o which_o be_v lay_v that_o be_v christ_n jesus_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o eph._n 2._o you_o be_v build_v say_v he_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n we_o know_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v 10._o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n and_o therefore_o right_o call_v canonical_a the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 2._o cor._n 10._o gal._n 6._o and_o phil._n 3._o mean_v no_o other_o rule_n but_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o holy_a scripture_n the_o father_n also_o proceed_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n both_o where_o they_o seek_v direction_n for_o themselves_o and_o also_o where_o they_o bring_v argument_n against_o heretic_n ireney_n lib._n ●_o advers._n haeres_fw-la cap._n 1._o call_v the_o gospel_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n tertul._n write_v against_o hermogenes_n say_v he_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o why_o inter_fw-la scripture_n as_o enim_fw-la dei_fw-la colores_fw-la suos_fw-la invenire_fw-la nö_o potuerat_fw-la he_o can_v not_o find_v hi●_n colour_n or_o fancy_n in_o scripture_n athan._n say_v orat._n 2._o contr_n arian_n that_o heretic_n be_v to_o be_v stone_v with_o argument_n out_o of_o scripture_n out_o of_o scripture_n that_o arian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a &_o other_o heretic_n in_o other_o synod_n be_v confute_v and_o general_o antiquity_n do_v call_v scripture_n the_o canon_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n agréeable_o therefore_o to_o scripture_n and_o father_n the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n acknowledge_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o thence_o take_v the_o article_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n and_o therefore_o i_o call_v scripture_n and_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v out_o of_o scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n not_o separate_v the_o rule_n from_o scripture_n as_o parson_n 1._o encontr_n cap._n 15._o of_o his_o warn-word_n do_v cavil_n but_o in_o the_o rule_n comprehend_v whatsoever_o be_v either_o express_v in_o term_n or_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n deduce_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o this_o i_o do_v to_o avoid_v the_o causl_n of_o the_o adversary_n which_o infer_v because_o this_o word_n trinity_n or_o consubstantial_a or_o baptism_n of_o child_n be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n that_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o solid_a and_o entire_a rule_n of_o faith_n against_o this_o parson_n in_o his_o warn-word_n 1._o encontr_n c._n 15._o allege_v first_o certain_a name_n of_o father_n then_o certain_a word_n out_o of_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la phil._n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o &_o 4._o adversus_fw-la haeres_fw-la tertullian_n de_fw-fr prescript_n adversus_fw-la heretic_n and_o uincentius_n lirinensis_n but_o he_o spend_v his_o labour_n in_o vain_a and_o abuse_v his_o reader_n for_o none_o of_o these_o father_n speak_v of_o other_o matter_n than_o such_o as_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n 4._o as_o the_o place_n themselves_o show_v ireney_n by_o tradition_n prove_v god_n to_o be_v the_o creator_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n his_o incarnation_n but_o parson_n will_v not_o deny_v this_o to_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n tertullian_n de_fw-fr prescript_n advers._n haeret._n dispute_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o valentinian_o and_o marcionite_n draw_v argument_n from_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o tradition_n but_o that_o be_v because_o they_o deny_v and_o corrupt_a scripture_n for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o their_o heresy_n be_v clear_o convince_v by_o scripture_n quod_fw-la sumus_fw-la hoc_fw-la sunt_fw-la that_o we_o be_v that_o they_o be_v say_v tertullian_n speak_v of_o scripture_n that_o be_v likewise_o the_o meaning_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la cap._n 27._o for_o that_o depost_n of_o which_o he_o talk_v be_v nothing_o but_o the_o christian_a faith_n contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o if_o
parson_n will_v prove_v his_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o must_v show_v a_o faith_n ground_v upon_o tradition_n that_o be_v not_o deduce_v out_o of_o scripture_n nay_o if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o he_o must_v show_v that_o not_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n as_o he_o say_v in_o his_o warn-word_n 1._o encoun_n cap._n 15._o but_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o hold_v ward-word_n encontr_n pag._n 6._o he_o do_v also_o object_n against_o we_o diverse_a alteration_n of_o religion_n 16._o in_o england_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o his_o reign_n and_o in_o king_n edward_n day_n and_o then_o ask_v by_o what_o authority_n our_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v establish_v but_o first_o he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v speak_v of_o that_o alteration_n make_v in_o q._n mary_n day_n when_o the_o impiety_n of_o popish_a religion_n be_v establish_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n second_o the_o alteration_n in_o religion_n make_v in_o england_n of_o late_a time_n make_v no_o variation_n in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v always_o one_o but_o in_o the_o application_n and_o use_n of_o it_o three_o albeit_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o article_n of_o religion_n be_v confirm_v wherein_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o confession_n be_v set_v down_o yet_o be_v that_o rather_o a_o declaration_n of_o our_o acceptance_n than_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o in_o itself_o be_v always_o immovable_a our_o rule_n of_o faith_n therefore_o be_v certain_a albeit_o not_o always_o in_o one_o sort_n approve_v or_o receive_v by_o man_n but_o that_o rule_n of_o popish_a faith_n neither_o in_o itself_o nor_o in_o the_o approbation_n of_o parliament_n or_o church_n be_v certain_a or_o immovable_a final_o he_o ask_v a_o question_n of_o sir_n francis_n in_o his_o ward-word_n p._n 5._o how_o he_o know_v his_o religion_n to_o be_v true_a and_o say_v he_o have_v only_o two_o mean_n to_o guide_v himself_o in_o this_o case_n and_o that_o be_v either_o scripture_n or_o the_o preach_n of_o our_o minister_n but_o this_o question_n as_o i_o have_v show_v touch_v himself_o that_o build_v his_o faith_n upon_o the_o pope_n near_o than_o sir_n francis_n who_o ground_v himself_o &_o his_o faith_n only_o upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o be_v assure_v of_o his_o faith_n not_o by_o these_o two_o mean_n only_o but_o by_o diverse_a other_o for_o beside_o scripture_n he_o have_v the_o help_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n spirit_n work_v within_o he_o of_o miracle_n record_v in_o scripture_n of_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o consent_n of_o nation_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o martyr_n and_o testimony_n of_o learned_a man_n and_o such_o like_a argument_n in_o this_o question_n therefore_o robert_n parson_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o silly_a friar_n and_o to_o have_v have_v more_o malice_n than_o may_v in_o time_n past_o also_o we_o be_v as_o sheep_n go_v astray_o and_o out_o of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n diverse_a of_o our_o ancestor_n worship_v the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n with_o divine_a worship_n some_o like_a bruit_n beast_n fall_v down_o before_o idol_n creep_v to_o the_o cross_n and_o kiss_v wood_n and_o stone_n other_o worship_v angel_n the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o saint_n pray_v unto_o they_o in_o all_o their_o necessity_n trust_v in_o they_o say_v mass_n in_o their_o honour_n and_o offer_v incense_n and_o prayer_n to_o their_o picture_n and_o image_n for_o so_o they_o be_v teach_v or_o rather_o mistaught_a by_o popish_a priest_n the_o komish_a synagogue_n in_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o religion_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a church_n the_o schoolman_n bring_v their_o proof_n out_o of_o the_o pope_n decretal_n and_o aristotle_n metaphysic_n est_fw-la petr's_n sedes_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n in_o praefat_fw-la ante_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n lapis_fw-la probatus_fw-la angularis_fw-la pretiosus_fw-la in_fw-la fundamento_fw-la fundatus_fw-la the_o see_v of_o peter_n be_v a_o approve_a corner_n stone_n precious_a and_o lay_v in_o the_o foundation_n the_o same_o man_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n cap._n 31._o call_v the_o pope_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n sanders_n call_v he_o the_o rock_n alij_fw-la nunc_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la say_v stapleton_n relect_a princip_n doctr_n in_o praef._n eorúmue_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praedicatio_fw-la determinatio_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la apud_fw-la i_o locum_fw-la habebunt_fw-la that_o be_v other_o now_o beside_o christ_n and_o their_o doctrine_n preach_v and_o determination_n shall_v be_v esteem_v of_o i_o as_o a_o foundation_n this_o he_o say_v where_o he_o talk_v of_o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n but_o the_o catholic_a churth_n have_v no_o foundation_n beside_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o gospel_n teach_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n gal._n 1._o denounce_v he_o accurse_v that_o teach_v any_o other_o gospel_n then_o that_o which_o he_o have_v preach_v the_o holy_a father_n prove_v the_o faith_n by_o holy_a scripture_n and_o not_o by_o popish_a decretal_n and_o philosophical_a principle_n concern_v christ_n body_n the_o komanists_n teach_v that_o the_o same_o be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n albeit_o we_o neither_o can_v see_v it_o there_o nor_o feel_v it_o but_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o his_o body_n be_v both_o palpable_a and_o visible_a and_o be_v now_o take_v up_o into_o heaven_n so_o likewise_o teach_v the_o father_n ulc_a vigilius_n in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o eutyches_n speak_v of_o christ_n body_n when_o it_o be_v on_o earth_n say_v he_o sure_o it_o be_v not_o in_o heaven_n and_o now_o because_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n certain_o it_o be_v not_o on_o earth_n they_o have_v also_o bring_v in_o new_a doctrine_n concern_v purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n and_o which_o be_v no_o more_o like_a to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n than_o heresy_n and_o novelty_n to_o christian_a religion_n they_o teach_v that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o satisfy_v in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o mortal_a sin_n commit_v after_o baptism_n and_o remit_v concern_v the_o guiltiness_n must_v satisfy_v for_o the_o same_o in_o purgatory_n unless_o it_o please_v the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n to_o release_v he_o of_o the_o tormentor_n of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n and_o of_o the_o nature_n quality_n and_o effect_n of_o indulgence_n they_o talk_v idle_o and_o unlike_a to_o the_o scholar_n of_o catholic_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n they_o have_v quite_o change_v in_o baptism_n add_v salt_n spittle_n hallow_a water_n exorcism_n blowing_n annointing_n light_n and_o other_o strange_a ceremony_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n take_v away_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o communicant_n and_o not_o deliver_v but_o hang_v up_o or_o carry_v about_o the_o sacrament_n and_o worship_v it_o as_o god_n and_o final_o believe_v &_o hold_v transubstantiation_n they_o have_v also_o devise_v other_o sacrament_n and_o teach_v that_o they_o contain_v grace_n and_o iustisse_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o kiss_v the_o pope_n toe_n and_o to_o receive_v his_o dunghill_n decrental_n worship_v antichrist_n and_o intitle_v he_o christ_n uicar_n all_o which_o novelty_n superstition_n and_o heresy_n by_o her_o majesty_n godly_a reformation_n be_v abolish_v who_o have_v restore_v the_o ancient_a cathalike_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n which_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v alter_v &_o suppress_v she_o have_v also_o by_o her_o authority_n bring_v we_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o by_o good_a law_n confirm_v true_a christian_a religion_n before_o our_o time_n there_o be_v no_o settlement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n durand_n deny_v divinity_n to_o be_v scientia_fw-la thomas_n and_o richard_n middleton_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v write_v upon_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n the_o schoolman_n strive_v 1._o about_o the_o word_n uti_fw-la and_o frui_fw-la dissent_v not_o only_a from_o their_o master_n but_o also_o from_o one_o another_o they_o differ_v also_o much_o about_o the_o distination_n of_o divine_a attribute_n utrum_fw-la sit_fw-la realis_fw-la formalis_fw-la a_o rationis_fw-la tantùm_fw-la this_o say_v dionysius_n a_o charterhouse_n monk_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a difficulty_n send_v of_o divine_n and_o about_o it_o between_o famous_a doctor_n be_v great_a dissension_n and_o contention_n aegidius_n do_v lance_n thomas_n and_o other_o run_v upon_o both_o aegidius_n in_o lib._n 1._o send_v do_v 2._o will_v have_v the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o a_o certain_a thing_n
in_o one_o that_o be_v not_o in_o another_o but_o other_o condemn_v he_o for_o that_o opinion_n write_v upon_o the_o 3._o do_v lib._n 1._o send_v they_o deny_v their_o master_n example_n and_o one_o condemn_v another_o bonaventure_n say_v that_o man_n may_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n by_o natural_a reason_n other_o say_v contrary_a the_o scotist_n lib._n 1._o send_v do_v 5._o inveigh_v against_o henricus_fw-la de_fw-la gandavo_fw-la for_o his_o opinion_n about_o the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n aegidius_n hold_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v power_n to_o beget_v another_o son_n which_o displease_v thomas_n and_o bonaventure_n and_o be_v very_o strange_a doctrine_n thomas_n aquinas_n part_n 1._o q._n 32._o art_n 4._o say_v that_o doctor_n may_v hold_v contrary_a opinion_n cinca_n notiones_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la he_o teach_v also_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v more_o principal_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n then_o from_o the_o son_n which_o other_o mislike_v if_o then_o they_o agree_v not_o about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o in_o matter_n wherein_o they_o have_v liberty_n to_o dissent_v they_o will_v better_o agree_v scotus_n hold_v that_o the_o 1._o soul_n and_o a_o angel_n do_v not_o differ_v as_o two_o diverse_a kind_n dthers_n teach_v contrary_a some_o doctor_n hold_v that_o angel_n consist_v of_o form_n only_o other_o 3._o hold_v contrary_a they_o dissent_v also_o about_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n pighius_fw-la in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n dissent_v from_o his_o fellow_n innocentius_n in_o c._n maiores_fw-la de_fw-la bapt_v &_o eius_fw-la effect_n mislike_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n that_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v pronitas_fw-la ad_fw-la peccandum_fw-la that_o be_v a_o proneness_n to_o sin_n the_o thomist_n to_o this_o day_n can_v never_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o scotist_n about_o the_o conception_n of_o our_o lady_n these_o deny_v she_o be_v conceive_v in_o sin_n the_o other_o affirm_v it_o gropper_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o créed_a confess_v that_o among_o the_o papist_n there_o be_v two_o diverse_a opinion_n about_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o controversy_n do_v not_o more_o violent_o run_v upon_o we_o then_o upon_o his_o own_o consort_n in_o every_o article_n almost_o he_o bring_v contrary_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o be_v a_o pledge_n of_o love_n there_o be_v infinite_a contradiction_n among_o they_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la against_o bellarmine_n the_o like_a contention_n i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o treatise_n de_fw-fr indulgentijs_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr purgatorio_fw-la and_o shall_v have_v occasion_n more_o at_o large_a to_o speak_v of_o they_o hereafter_o we_o be_v therefore_o to_o thank_v god_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v settle_v and_o that_o refuse_v all_o novelty_n we_o agree_v therein_o with_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n we_o acknowledge_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n one_o canon_n of_o scripture_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o rule_n of_o all_o ancient_a and_o lawful_a general_a counsel_n concern_v the_o faith_n we_o admit_v we_o have_v one_o bniforme_a order_n for_o public_a prayer_n adminis_fw-la stration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o god_n service_n neither_o do_v we_o only_o agree_v among_o ourselves_o but_o also_o with_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o france_n and_o germany_n and_o other_o nation_n especial_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n and_o as_o for_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o all_o church_n therein_o have_v their_o liberty_n as_o the_o diversity_n of_o ancient_a church_n and_o testimony_n of_o father_n do_v teach_v us._n most_o bane_n therefore_o and_o contumelious_a be_v that_o discourse_n of_o n._n d._n in_o his_o warne-word_n 1._o encontr_n ca._n 4_o 5_o &_o 6._o where_o he_o talk_v of_o the_o difference_n of_o soft_a and_o rigid_a lutheran_n among_o themselves_o of_o they_o from_o anabaptist_n and_o from_o zwinglian_o of_o all_o from_o the_o follower_n of_o seruetus_fw-la and_o valentine_n gentilis_fw-la for_o neither_o do_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o name_n of_o lutheran_n caluinian_n or_o zwinglians_n but_o only_o call_v ourselves_o christian_n nor_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o the_o arian_n or_o anabaptist_n or_o seruetus_fw-la or_o gentilis_fw-la or_o any_o heretic_n nay_o by_o our_o doctor_n these_o fellow_n be_v have_n be_v diligent_o confute_v and_o by_o our_o governor_n the_o principal_a of_o they_o have_v be_v punish_v but_o these_o may_v parson_n reply_n have_v be_v among_o us._n admit_v it_o be_v so_o yet_o do_v not_o our_o adversary_n take_v themselves_o to_o be_v guilty_a of_o arianisme_n and_o anabaptisine_n because_o there_o be_v diverse_a guilty_a of_o arianisine_n and_o anabaptisme_n among_o they_o we_o say_v further_o that_o the_o church_n of_o germany_n france_n and_o england_n agree_v albeit_o private_a man_n hold_v private_a opinion_n final_o where_o we_o talk_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n what_o a_o ridiculous_a sot_n be_v this_o to_o bring_v a_o instance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o germany_n or_o suizzerland_n nay_o not_o of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o private_a person_n and_o that_o in_o matter_n not_o very_o substantial_a if_o we_o admit_v their_o own_o interpretation_n have_v therefore_o talk_v his_o pleasure_n of_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n he_o descend_v to_o speak_v of_o rigid_a and_o soft_a caluinist_n as_o he_o call_v they_o in_o england_n he_o call_v they_o also_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n but_o neither_o do_v we_o admit_v these_o name_n of_o faction_n nor_o be_v he_o able_a to_o show_v that_o public_o any_o christian_n be_v tolerate_v to_o dissent_v either_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o rite_n from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o if_o any_o there_o be_v that_o mislike_v our_o rite_n yet_o be_v not_o that_o contention_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n nor_o can_v the_o disorder_n of_o private_a person_n hinder_v the_o public_a union_n of_o the_o church_n final_o i_o do_v not_o know_v any_o man_n now_o but_o he_o be_v reasonable_o well_o satisfy_v concern_v matter_n of_o discipline_n albeit_o the_o same_o be_v with_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o papist_n who_o go_v about_o to_o stirrc_n up_o the_o coal_n of_o contention_n as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v that_o heretofore_o have_v be_v cover_v chap._n ii_o of_o the_o restore_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o the_o true_a faith_n true_a faith_n in_o time_n of_o popery_n be_v a_o great_a stranger_n in_o england_n most_o man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o all_o point_n of_o christian_n religion_n the_o rest_n hold_v diverse_a erroneous_a point_n and_o heresy_n their_o ignorance_n we_o shall_v prove_v by_o diverse_a testimony_n hereafter_o their_o error_n and_o hercue_n be_v very_o apparent_a and_o at_o large_a prove_v in_o my_o late_a challenge_n that_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n 1._o tim._n 4._o that_o they_o embrace_v for_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o forbid_v their_o priest_n monk_n friar_n and_o nun_n to_o marry_v and_o command_v the_o benedictines_n and_o their_o charterhouse_n monk_n at_o all_o time_n to_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n they_o also_o forbid_v man_n to_o eat_v flesh_n upon_v all_o fast_a day_n friday_n and_o saturday_n and_o in_o lent_n dissolve_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n by_o their_o own_o tradition_n the_o manicheye_n abstain_v from_o egg_n as_o saint_n augustine_n show_v lib._n de_fw-fr heres_fw-la cap._n 46._o nec_fw-la eva_fw-la saltem_fw-la sumunt_fw-la quasi_fw-la &_o ipsa_fw-la cum_fw-la franguntur_fw-la expirent_fw-la nec_fw-la oporteat_fw-la ullis_fw-la corporibus_fw-la mortuis_fw-la vesci_fw-la so_o likewise_o do_v papist_n at_o certain_a time_n they_o call_v such_o as_o allow_v ymariage_n of_o priest_n 82._o sectatores_fw-la libidinum_fw-la &_o praeceptores_fw-la vitiorum_fw-la that_o be_v follower_n of_o lust_n and_o teacher_n of_o vice_n albeit_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v marriage_n to_o be_v honourable_a in_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n they_o dissolve_v such_o marriage_n albeit_o christ_n teach_v that_o man_n be_v not_o to_o separate_v they_o who_o god_n have_v join_v together_o their_o fast_n they_o place_v in_o eat_v of_o fish_n and_o not_o in_o abstinence_n from_o all_o sustenance_n as_o the_o ancient_a father_n by_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v teach_v some_o count_v it_o as_o mortal_a sin_n to_o eat_v flesh_n on_o friday_n as_o to_o kill_v a_o man_n and_o that_o a_o priest_n do_v sin_n less_o in_o commit_v fornication_n then_o in_o match_v himself_o in_o honest_a marriage_n and_o yet_o they_o confess_v that_o
exhort_v all_o man_n 5._o to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o idol_n this_o sin_n be_v direct_a against_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o nothing_o else_o but_o spiritual_a fornication_n let_v we_o therefore_o see_v whether_o the_o papist_n may_v not_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o aforesaid_a crime_n of_o teach_v heretical_a and_o false_a doctrine_n and_o of_o long_a continuance_n in_o schism_n superstition_n and_o idolatry_n that_o the_o papist_n teach_v false_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n the_o act_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n of_o florence_n and_o constance_n compare_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n will_v plain_o declare_v for_o as_o tertullian_n say_v of_o old_a heretic_n so_o may_v we_o say_v of_o they_o that_o their_o doctrine_n compare_v with_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n do_v by_o the_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n thereof_o declare_v that_o it_o proceed_v from_o no_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n ipsa_fw-la doctrina_fw-la eorum_fw-la cum_fw-la apostolica_fw-la compar_fw-la at_o a_o ex_fw-la diversitate_fw-la &_o contrarietate_fw-la sua_fw-la pronunciabit_fw-la neque_fw-la apostoli_fw-la alicuius_fw-la autoris_fw-la esse_fw-la neque_fw-la apostolici_fw-la say_v he_o the_o apostle_n teackech_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a they_o say_v 3._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v but_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o very_o imperfect_a without_o tradition_n s._n peter_n 2._o pet._n 1._o compare_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o a_o candle_n shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n they_o teach_v that_o scripture_n be_v dark_a and_o obscure_a god_n command_v we_o to_o hear_v his_o belove_a son_n mat._n 3._o they_o command_v we_o not_o to_o hear_v christ_n speak_v in_o scripture_n to_o we_o but_o to_o hear_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o carolike_a crew_n which_o they_o endue_v with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v be_v lay_v 3._o beside_o that_o which_o be_v already_o lay_v which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n these_o fellow_n say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n although_o we_o find_v plain_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o pope_n for_o many_o age_n in_o the_o church_n christ_n say_v read_v the_o scripture_n these_o say_v direct_o to_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n read_v not_o scripture_n in_o vulgar_a tong_n without_o licence_n s._n john_n teach_v we_o that_o sin_n be_v whatsoever_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n these_o teach_v that_o many_o sin_n there_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o god_n law_n viz._n such_o thing_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n law_n the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n these_o affirm_v the_o contrary_n he_o say_v original_a sin_n pass_v over_o all_o they_o deny_v it_o he_o say_v no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n they_o teach_v flat_a contrary_n the_o law_n direct_o prohibit_v the_o make_n of_o grave_a image_n to_o the_o end_n to_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o and_o to_o worship_v they_o these_o notwithstanding_o make_v the_o image_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n bow_v down_o to_o they_o and_o worship_v they_o the_o apostle_n coloss._n 2._o speak_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o angel_n they_o regard_v he_o not_o but_o in_o humbleness_n of_o mind_n invocate_v and_o worship_v angel_n notwithstanding_o our_o saviour_n institute_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n say_v accipite_fw-la manducate_v take_v and_o eat_v and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o they_o say_v sacrifice_n and_o worship_n and_o drink_v not_o all_o of_o this_o to_o rehearse_v all_o their_o contradiction_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v too_o long_o for_o this_o short_a discourse_n let_v these_o therefore_o serve_v for_o a_o introduction_n of_o their_o heresy_n i_o have_v before_o speak_v pius_fw-la the_o four_o have_v set_v forth_o a_o new_a form_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o that_o may_v be_v say_v which_o hilary_n speak_v to_o constantius_n quicquid_fw-la apud_fw-la te_fw-la praeter_fw-la fidem_fw-la unam_fw-la constantium_fw-la est_fw-la perfidia_fw-la non_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la whatsoever_o this_o wicked_a pope_n have_v set_v forth_o beside_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o be_v perfidiousnes_n and_o not_o faith_n of_o this_o quality_n be_v his_o doctrine_n of_o romish_a tradition_n of_o superstitious_a ceremony_n of_o the_o blasphemous_a hasse_n of_o purgatory_n of_o indulgence_n of_o the_o five_o new_a devise_v sacrament_n and_o such_o like_a doctrine_n that_o the_o papist_n be_v by_o schism_n rend_v from_o the_o catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o diverse_a particular_n first_o christ_n church_n have_v but_o one_o head_n that_o be_v christ_n jesus_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v as_o many_o head_n as_o pope_n and_o head_n that_o teach_v doctrine_n both_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a to_o christ_n our_o sole_a head_n second_o christ_n his_o church_n have_v no_o other_o spouse_n but_o christ_n jesus_n but_o the_o adulterous_a romish_a synagogue_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o spouse_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o have_v as_o many_o spouse_n as_o pope_n and_o be_v not_o virgo_fw-la but_o polygama_n that_o be_v one_o that_o have_v many_o husband_n or_o spouse_n three_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o corner_n stone_n and_o have_v beside_o this_o no_o other_o foundation_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o foundation_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o she_o be_v sometime_o without_o foundation_n at_o least_o during_o the_o vacancy_n of_o the_o popedom_n and_o have_v as_o many_o diverse_a foundation_n as_o pope_n four_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o lawgiver_n and_o judge_v &_o that_o he_o have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n but_o also_o to_o save_v and_o destroy_v which_o do_v show_v that_o she_o devide_v herself_o from_o christ_n catholic_a church_n which_o for_o many_o age_n after_o christ_n time_n have_v no_o such_o conceit_n five_o the_o same_o do_v rely_v no_o less_o upon_o tradition_n not_o write_v and_o upon_o the_o pope_n determination_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n then_o upon_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o six_o this_o synagogue_n consist_v of_o a_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n together_o with_o a_o rabble_n of_o monk_n friar_n and_o sacrifice_a priest_n but_o in_o the_o prime_a catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o such_o state_n nor_o order_n of_o man_n to_o be_v find_v final_o the_o member_n of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n be_v not_o only_o divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o doctrine_n sacrament_n external_a government_n and_o fellowship_n but_o also_o one_o from_o another_o the_o thomist_n differ_v from_o the_o scotist_n the_o monk_n from_o beg_a friar_n the_o regular_a order_n from_o secular_a priest_n one_o doctor_n from_o another_o and_o one_o pope_n ofttimes_o from_o another_o if_o then_o schismatickes_n be_v no_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o their_o doctor_n teach_v then_o be_v not_o the_o romanist_n of_o the_o church_n again_o if_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o among_o themselves_o then_o have_v they_o long_o continue_v in_o schism_n the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o superstition_n do_v show_v the_o papist_n to_o be_v also_o most_o superstitious_a for_o if_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o superstition_n either_o to_o give_v religious_a honour_n and_o worship_n to_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o it_o or_o else_o to_o worship_n god_n after_o humane_a device_n and_o otherwise_o then_o he_o have_v command_v then_o do_v they_o gross_o offend_v in_o superstition_n but_o it_o be_v most_o notorious_a that_o they_o gross_o offend_v in_o both_o those_o point_n for_o first_o they_o invocate_v angel_n on_o the_o feast_n of_o michael_n the_o archangel_n they_o say_v holy_a s._n michael_n defend_v we_o in_o battle_n that_o we_o perish_v not_o in_o the_o fearful_a judgement_n they_o pray_v also_o to_o the_o angel_n that_o keep_v they_o who_o rom._n they_o know_v not_o and_o this_o adoration_n of_o angel_n in_o the_o roman_a catechism_n be_v allow_v if_o not_o command_v second_o they_o worship_v the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o call_v she_o the_o mother_n of_o grace_n and_o port_n of_o salvation_n bernardin_n do_v call_v mariali_n she_o the_o mediatrix_fw-la betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o and_o the_o helper_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n they_o pray_v unto_o she_o for_o help_v per_fw-la amorem_fw-la unigeniti_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la as_o if_o christ_n be_v a_o
show_v himself_o to_o be_v past_a shame_n to_o talk_v against_o marriage_n when_o himself_o be_v beget_v by_o a_o filthy_a priest_n and_o his_o consort_n wallow_v in_o all_o beastly_a abomination_n wherefore_o let_v the_o adversary_n storm_n and_o rage_n as_o much_o as_o they_o list_v yet_o will_v we_o say_v and_o may_v say_v it_o most_o true_o that_o both_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o state_n have_v receive_v great_a blessing_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n late_a happy_a government_n and_o if_o nothing_o else_o yet_o the_o vain_a opposition_n of_o enemy_n and_o traitor_n may_v persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v so_o for_o not_o only_o their_o misliking_n do_v fhew_o that_o both_o the_o church_n and_o state_n be_v well_o order_v for_o otherwise_o they_o will_v have_v be_v better_o please_v but_o also_o their_o vain_a jangling_n and_o contradiction_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o object_v any_o thing_n which_o sound_v not_o to_o her_o majesty_n honeur_n and_o high_a commendation_n confirm_v the_o same_o chap._n xiii_o parson_n his_o curse_a talk_n of_o curse_n of_o england_n by_o change_n of_o religion_n and_o government_n under_o queen_n elizabeth_n examine_v the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v of_o the_o foolish_a and_o wicked_a man_n of_o his_o time_n say_v that_o their_o throat_n be_v a_o open_a sepulchre_n 14._o and_o afterward_o that_o their_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o curse_v and_o bitterness_n the_o which_o we_o see_v verify_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o impious_a sect_n for_o their_o throat_n be_v wide_a as_o the_o grave_n and_o swallow_v the_o wealth_n of_o europe_n they_o also_o degorge_v out_o of_o they_o all_o the_o wickedness_n and_o villainy_n they_o can_v devise_v against_o the_o godly_a pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la and_o sixtus_n quintus_n accurse_v the_o queen_n robert_n parson_n follow_v their_o step_n rail_v upon_o she_o in_o diverse_a libel_n in_o his_o warn-word_n that_o be_v a_o compliment_n of_o his_o foolery_n he_o say_v we_o receive_v no_o blessing_n by_o she_o but_o rather_o curse_n here_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o answer_v the_o bark_n of_o this_o curse_a hellhound_n and_o of_o his_o accurse_a companion_n in_o the_o first_o encounter_n of_o his_o wardword_n p._n 4._o he_o say_v we_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o general_a body_n of_o catholic_n in_o christendom_n but_o this_o shall_v have_v be_v prove_v if_o he_o will_v have_v any_o man_n to_o give_v he_o credit_n for_o we_o allege_v that_o the_o papist_n from_o who_o we_o be_v divide_v be_v no_o catholic_n believe_v the_o new_a doctrine_n of_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o lateran_n constance_n florence_n &_o trent_n &_o other_o friar_n &_o priest_n which_o neither_o be_v receive_v of_o all_o man_n nor_o in_o all_o time_n nor_o in_o all_o place_n which_o be_v the_o true_a property_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n next_o we_o offer_v to_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v true_a catholic_n see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v apostolical_a and_o universal_o approve_v of_o all_o true_a christian_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n confess_v by_o the_o papist_n until_o of_o late_a time_n if_o then_o this_o be_v a_o principal_a curse_n to_o be_v divide_v from_o catholic_n then_o do_v the_o same_o fall_n on_o parson_n his_o own_o head_n and_o upon_o his_o treacherous_a consort_n and_o not_o upon_o us._n second_o he_o say_v that_o we_o of_o england_n be_v divide_v from_o lutheran_n zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n abroad_o and_o from_o puritan_n &_o brownist_n and_o other_o like_a good_a fellow_n at_o home_n but_o this_o common_a jergon_n of_o papist_n be_v already_o answer_v for_o neither_o do_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o name_n of_o lutheran_n zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n nor_o can_v he_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o france_n germany_n or_o suizzerland_n or_o that_o one_o church_n oppugn_v another_o if_o any_o private_a man_n do_v maintain_v private_a opinion_n in_o doctrine_n as_o diverse_a german_n french_a and_o english_a do_v or_o else_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n among_o we_o concern_v ceremony_n and_o government_n that_o do_v no_o more_o make_v a_o schism_n in_o our_o church_n than_o the_o diverse_a rite_n of_o spanish_a french_a and_o italian_n and_o diverse_a opinion_n in_o all_o point_n of_o religion_n between_o old_a and_o new_a romish_a doctor_n make_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o general_o we_o all_o agree_v in_o substance_n of_o faith_n &_o in_o rite_n &_o ceremony_n refer_v every_o church_n to_o their_o liberty_n in_o england_n public_o there_o be_v more_o uniformity_n in_o doctrine_n prayer_n &_o ceremony_n then_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n albeit_o some_o private_a man_n who_o parson_n use_v to_o call_v puritan_n dissent_v in_o some_o point_n as_o among_o the_o papist_n there_o be_v diverse_a that_o allow_v not_o all_o which_o they_o hold_v common_o but_o say_v he_o in_o his_o warne-word_n encont_n 1._o c._n 15._o the_o french_a german_n and_o scottish_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o english_a in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o four_o five_o and_o six_o and_o sequent_a chapter_n but_o if_o he_o have_v find_v any_o difference_n he_o will_v not_o have_v spare_v to_o set_v they_o down_o in_o the_o chapter_n mention_v he_o show_v not_o that_o we_o differ_v in_o any_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o substantial_a point_n of_o religion_n but_o rather_o in_o rite_n ceremony_n and_o some_o diverse_a interpretation_n of_o some_o word_n of_o scripture_n three_o he_o will_v make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n in_o religion_n and_o that_o as_o he_o foole-wise_o imagine_v because_o we_o have_v no_o certain_a rule_n whereby_o to_o direct_v our_o conscience_n and_o this_o he_o handle_v both_o in_o his_o wardword_n 1_o encontr_n and_o warnw._n 1._o enc_n c._n 15._o &_o 16._o and_o other_o place_n skip_v like_o a_o ape_n up_o a_o down_o without_o rule_n order_n or_o reason_n but_o while_o he_o talk_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v direct_a contrary_n to_o himself_o for_o in_o his_o wardw._n p._n 6._o he_o say_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v the_o direct_a rule_n and_o squire_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v and_o in_o the_o warnw._n enc._n 1._o c._n 15._o nu_fw-la 10._o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o corpse_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n deliver_v at_o the_o begin_n by_o the_o miracle_n and_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o i_o omit_v to_o tell_v robert_n parson_n that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o make_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n and_o a_o squire_n the_o rule_n be_v direct_a and_o the_o squire_n be_v square_a it_o be_v also_o ridiculous_a though_o i_o do_v not_o tell_v he_o of_o it_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o miracle_n for_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o writing_n and_o preach_v and_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n but_o i_o can_v forbear_v to_o tell_v he_o that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n how_o then_o can_v these_o two_o make_v one_o rule_n next_o he_o take_v exception_n to_o my_o word_n where_o i_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v a_o certain_a rule_n to_o follow_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o those_o conclusion_n which_o be_v to_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o they_o be_v no_o certain_a rule_n or_o else_o as_o if_o tradition_n that_o be_v no_o where_o certain_o describe_v or_o set_v down_o be_v a_o more_o certain_a and_o authentical_a rule_n then_o scripture_n and_o necessary_a deduction_n out_o of_o they_o four_o he_o give_v out_o that_o we_o despair_v of_o all_o certain_a 17._o rule_n or_o mean_v to_o try_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v a_o most_o desperate_a and_o impudent_a kind_n of_o deal_v for_o direct_o i_o tell_v he_o before_o and_o now_o i_o tell_v he_o again_o that_o our_o rule_n be_v most_o certain_a be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o conclusion_n necessary_a draw_v out_o of_o they_o nay_o this_o rule_n may_v in_o part_n be_v confirm_v by_o parson_n his_o own_o confession_n for_o if_o the_o corpse_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o say_v warnw_n 1._o encont_v c._n 15._o where_o be_v we_o to_o find_v it_o but_o in_o holy_a scripture_n he_o hold_v percase_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o pope_n bosom_n but_o if_o he_o say_v so_o in_o school_n he_o shall_v not_o want_v a_o great_a plaudit_fw-la than_o he_o have_v when_o have_v end_v his_o comical_a deal_n in_o bayliol_n college_n he_o be_v ring_v and_o hiss_v out_o of_o the_o house_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o scab_n and_o villainy_n be_v
catholic_a church_n do_v believe_v they_o alijs_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la simplices_fw-la vel_fw-la laici_fw-la sufficit_fw-la quod_fw-la credant_fw-la eos_fw-la scil_n articulos_fw-la fidei_fw-la implicitè_fw-fr id_fw-la est_fw-la sicut_fw-la docet_fw-la &_o credit_n sanctà_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la he_o say_v also_o that_o such_o knowledge_n be_v sufficient_a for_o clerk_n that_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o maintain_v themselves_o at_o school_n as_o some_o suppose_n but_o suppose_v they_o can_v say_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o believe_v they_o and_o the_o rest_n which_o peccham_n in_o the_o constitution_n ignorantia_fw-la de_fw-fr officio_fw-la archipres_fw-fr do_v require_v at_o their_o hand_n yet_o shall_v they_o be_v very_o ignorant_a for_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o yet_o know_v nothing_o nor_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v to_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o 2._o q._n 2._o art_n 6._o compare_v god_n people_n to_o ass_n and_o their_o teacher_n to_o ox_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o adhere_v to_o their_o superior_n because_o it_o be_v say_v job_n 1_o quòd_fw-la boves_fw-la arabant_fw-la &_o asinae_fw-la pascebantur_fw-la iuxta_fw-la eos_fw-la whereby_o it_o appear_v he_o require_v no_o great_a knowledge_n at_o lay_v man_n hand_n but_o will_v have_v they_o believe_v as_o their_o teacher_n do_v without_o further_a inquire_v he_o fetch_v his_o proof_n out_o of_o gregory_n but_o whence_o soever_o he_o draw_v it_o he_o use_v god_n people_n very_o rude_o that_o compare_v they_o to_o ass_n and_o ox_n yet_o thus_o much_o i_o be_o content_a to_o yield_v that_o the_o masspriest_n and_o their_o follower_n be_v like_o ox_n and_o ass_n firm_o link_v together_o by_o the_o pope_n cowherd_n and_o muleteer_n for_o the_o devil_n their_o master_n service_n the_o same_o man_n 2._o 2._o q._n 2._o art_n 5._o teach_v that_o lie_v man_n be_v to_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o no_o more_o explicitè_fw-fr the_o which_o be_v no_o point_n of_o deep_a learning_n &_o yet_o his_o scholar_n silvester_n in_o sum_n in_o verb._n fides_fw-la 6._o will_n not_o allow_v so_o much_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o a_o lay_v man_n to_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n but_o as_o much_o as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o direct_v we_o to_o the_o last_o end_n nec_fw-la tamen_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la cuilibet_fw-la say_v he_o explicitè_fw-fr credere_fw-la omnes_fw-la articulos_fw-la fidei_fw-la sed_fw-la quantum_fw-la sufficit_fw-la ad_fw-la dirigendum_fw-la in_o ultimum_fw-la finem_fw-la the_o author_n of_o summa_fw-la rosella_n say_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o fides_fw-la simple_a people_n and_o percase_o for_o lay_v man_n come_v to_o year_n and_o discretion_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o all_o good_a and_o a_o punisher_n of_o all_o evil_a and_o that_o other_o article_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v implicitè_fw-fr that_o be_v beléeve_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v simplicibus_fw-la &_o fortè_fw-la omnibus_fw-la laicis_fw-la discernentibus_fw-la &_o adultis_fw-la sufficit_fw-la credere_fw-la deum_fw-la esse_fw-la praemiatorem_fw-la bonorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la malorum_fw-la punitorem_fw-la alios_fw-la autem_fw-la articulos_fw-la sufficit_fw-la credere_fw-la implicit_a credendo_fw-la scil_n verum_fw-la quicquid_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la docet_fw-la but_o beside_o that_o this_o be_v a_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o adversary_n allowance_n of_o the_o people_n extreme_a ignorance_n it_o be_v false_a and_o blasphemous_a to_o say_v that_o any_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o notice_n or_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n as_o the_o author_n of_o summa_fw-la rosella_n his_o word_n imply_v loath_a the_o pope_n be_v that_o the_o people_n shall_v know_v too_o much_o and_o therefore_o he_o forbid_v scripture_n to_o be_v either_o translate_v or_o read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n without_o licence_n in_o public_a liturgy_n it_o be_v not_o the_o fashion_n of_o papist_n to_o suffer_v the_o people_n to_o hear_v scripture_n read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o papist_n also_o that_o understand_v not_o latin_a pray_v with_o their_o lip_n but_o not_o with_o their_o understanding_n and_o spirit_n for_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n be_v that_o the_o public_a liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n whereupon_o the_o people_n must_v needs_o grow_v dull_a and_o ignorant_a john_n billet_v in_o prolog_n lib._n the_o divin_v cffic_n complain_v of_o this_o abuse_n quid_fw-la nostris_fw-la temporibus_fw-la est_fw-la agendum_fw-la say_v he_o speak_v of_o read_v of_o latin_a service_n ubi_fw-la nullus_fw-la vel_fw-la rarus_fw-la reperitur_fw-la legens_fw-la vel_fw-la audience_n qui_fw-la intelligat_fw-la videns_fw-la vel_fw-la agens-qui_a animaduertat_fw-la iam_fw-la videtur_fw-la impletum_fw-la quod_fw-la à_fw-la propheta_fw-la dicitur_fw-la et_fw-la erit_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la quasi_fw-la de_fw-la populo_fw-la unus_fw-la he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v few_o or_o none_o that_o read_v or_o hear_v that_o do_v understand_v or_o mark_v what_o be_v read_v or_o hear_v and_o that_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v fulfil_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v like_o one_o of_o the_o people_n costerus_n say_v that_o god_n and_o the_o saint_n understand_v all_o recitand_n language_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o the_o people_n pray_v in_o latin_a which_o as_o it_o be_v blasphemous_a make_v saint_n present_a in_o all_o place_n so_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o he_o require_v little_a understanding_n in_o the_o people_n hosius_n commend_v the_o coliars_n faith_n that_o can_v not_o tell_v petrik_n one_o article_n of_o his_o belief_n but_o only_o answer_v that_o he_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v which_o be_v a_o argument_n first_o of_o the_o commendation_n of_o ignorance_n among_o the_o papist_n next_o of_o hosius_n his_o blasphemy_n that_o will_v have_v a_o man_n save_v beléeve_v as_o do_v the_o catholic_a church_n albeit_o he_o believe_v or_o know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n jesus_n see_v then_o the_o papist_n require_v so_o little_a knowledge_n in_o the_o people_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o either_o to_o pray_v or_o to_o have_v scripture_n read_v public_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o preach_v so_o seldom_o and_o so_o lewd_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o they_o shall_v prove_v great_a clerk_n furthermore_o the_o priest_n in_o england_n be_v command_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n the_o worship_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o image_n of_o relic_n and_o how_o far_o the_o same_o reach_v as_o appear_v by_o b._n arundel_n provincial_a constitution_n beginning_n nullus_fw-la de_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la they_o be_v also_o teach_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n be_v s._n austin_n of_o canterbury_n s._n bernac_n s._n dunstane_n and_o such_o good_a fellow_n and_o be_v wont_a to_o hear_v many_o good_a tale_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o s._n audrey_n and_o s._n cuthburge_n and_o other_o she_o saint_n but_o all_o this_o tend_v little_a to_o instruction_n in_o faith_n or_o reformation_n in_o manner_n final_o in_o stend_z of_o true_a doctrine_n they_o be_v teach_v the_o tradition_n of_o man_n concern_v worship_n of_o saint_n cross_n image_n relic_n fast_v on_o saint_n gigil_n pilgrimage_n indulgence_n purgatory_n and_o such_o like_a petrus_n de_fw-fr alliac_n lib._n dereform_v ecclesiae_fw-la wish_v that_o apocryphal_a scripture_n and_o new_a hymn_n and_o prayer_n and_o other_o voluntary_a novelty_n shall_v not_o be_v read_v in_o church_n quòd_fw-la in_o huiusmodi_fw-la festis_fw-la scripturae_fw-la apocryphae_fw-la aut_fw-la hymninovi_fw-la velorationes_fw-la seu_fw-la aliae_fw-la voluntariae_fw-la novitates_fw-la non_fw-la legerentur_fw-la but_o he_o prevail_v not_o nay_o further_o they_o do_v not_o only_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n and_o apocryphal_a novelty_n but_o also_o most_o wicked_o rehearse_v the_o commandment_n they_o have_v leave_v out_o the_o second_o commandment_n that_o concern_v worship_n of_o image_n albeit_o s._n augustine_n quaest_n ex_fw-la vet_n test_n 7._o do_v set_v it_o down_o for_o a_o distinct_a commandment_n from_o the_o first_o be_v then_o teach_v very_o little_a truth_n and_o much_o falsehood_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v in_o time_n past_o very_o ignorant_a and_o that_o john_n billet_v in_o prolog_n de_fw-mi divin_v off_o plain_o confess_v experience_n also_o teach_v the_o same_o and_o manifest_o show_v that_o they_o scarce_o understand_v any_o article_n of_o the_o créed_a acertaine_a italian_a being_n ask_v not_o many_o year_n since_o by_o his_o confessor_n in_o rome_n whether_o he_o believe_v the_o holy_a trinity_n answer_v yea_o be_v further_o demand_v what_o the_o trinity_n be_v what_o say_v he_o but_o our_o lord_n god_n and_o our_o lady_n and_o you_o our_o master_n the_o priest_n and_o friar_n they_o be_v so_o brutish_a that_o they_o very_o believe_v that_o image_n walk_v and_o talk_v and_o have_v life_n certain_a parishioner_n of_o a_o village_n not_o
rather_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o pope_n bosom_n than_o any_o corpse_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n for_o that_o be_v very_o rife_a with_o they_o with_o the_o corpse_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n the_o italian_a atheistical_a pope_n be_v little_o acquaint_v we_o tell_v he_o further_o that_o for_o trial_n of_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n we_o be_v not_o to_o run_v to_o the_o pope_n sea_n which_o be_v as_o much_o able_a to_o resolve_v we_o as_o his_o close_a stool_n but_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n about_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v then_o to_o compare_v the_o same_o with_o other_o place_n to_o search_v the_o resolution_n of_o counsel_n of_o ancient_a and_o late_a father_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o learned_a man_n provide_v always_o that_o nothing_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o ground_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o then_o s._n augustine_n or_o hierome_n or_o ambrose_n or_o luther_n or_o calvin_n or_o any_o preacher_n among_o we_o bring_v we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v but_o if_o they_o teach_v without_o that_o we_o be_v not_o necessary_o to_o credit_v they_o nor_o to_o believe_v they_o in_o ground_n of_o faith_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n we_o learn_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n albeit_o all_o particular_a matter_n be_v not_o precise_o set_v down_o so_o likewise_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v most_o true_a &_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v christ_n body_n in_o a_o mystery_n or_o sacramental_o albeit_o how_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n there_o may_v be_v some_o difference_n likewise_o out_o of_o scripture_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o king_n be_v the_o most_o principal_a man_n in_o his_o realm_n and_o not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o other_o in_o external_a government_n albeit_o every_o one_o percase_o understand_v not_o the_o several_a point_n of_o his_o supreme_a authority_n these_o difference_n therefore_o notwithstanding_o our_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v most_o certain_a five_o he_o will_v insinuate_v that_o as_o virtue_n houskéeping_n &_o true_a deal_n be_v much_o decay_a since_o her_o majesty_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n so_o pride_n in_o apparel_n gluttony_n drunkenness_n lechery_n swear_v and_o other_o vice_n be_v much_o increase_v but_o the_o man_n shall_v show_v that_o these_o virtue_n be_v decay_v and_o vice_n increase_v in_o man_n that_o be_v true_o of_o our_o religion_n if_o he_o say_v so_o then_o let_v he_o name_v the_o man_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o these_o fault_n if_o the_o man_n that_o be_v guilty_a be_v papist_n that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v know_v to_o be_v carnal_a and_o cruel_a and_o most_o vicious_a he_o strike_v himself_o and_o not_o us._n if_o they_o be_v atheist_n or_o hypocrite_n than_o his_o allegation_n make_v not_o to_o purpose_n this_o i_o will_v speak_v to_o his_o tooth_n that_o if_o our_o ministry_n be_v no_o more_o honest_a and_o vert●ous_a than_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n friar_n and_o masspriest_n and_o our_o true_a professor_n then_o zealous_a papist_n it_o be_v pity_v they_o shall_v live_v on_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n some_o proof_n i_o have_v bring_v before_o and_o more_o i_o shall_v allege_v hereafter_o let_v parson_n do_v the_o like_a against_o we_o and_o leave_v his_o hypocritical_a ostentation_n and_o general_a declamation_n that_o make_v man_n rather_o to_o wonder_v at_o his_o impudence_n then_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o deal_v true_o or_o sincere_o six_o he_o very_o impudent_o impute_v all_o the_o trouble_n war_n and_o calamity_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o scotland_n ireland_n 18._o flanders_n &_o france_n to_o alteration_n in_o religion_n and_o will_v lay_v the_o blame_n whole_o upon_o us._n but_o if_o he_o look_v into_o their_o immediate_a cause_n he_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o mint_n of_o this_o money_n be_v the_o pope_n consistory_n and_o that_o he_o and_o his_o agent_n be_v the_o only_a firebrand_n of_o all_o mischief_n in_o ireland_n gregory_n the_o thirteen_o stir_v up_o rebellion_n by_o the_o traitor_n saunders_n his_o legate_n in_o england_n pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la by_o his_o agent_n ridolphi_n and_o by_o morton_n his_o messenger_n move_v the_o two_o earl_n to_o rise_v in_o the_o north_n anno_fw-la 1569._o the_o same_o pope_n animate_v the_o spanish_a king_n to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n and_o against_o they_o of_o the_o low_a country_n the_o same_o pope_n send_v not_o only_o his_o agent_n to_o stir_v the_o french_a but_o aid_v they_o both_o with_o man_n and_o money_n gregory_n the_o thirteen_o likewise_o send_v aid_n to_o irish_a rebel_n the_o war_n of_o germany_n be_v inflame_v by_o that_o butcherly_a pope_n paul_n the_o three_o to_o make_v short_a all_o massacre_n treachery_n war_n and_o trouble_n have_v whole_o proceed_v from_o their_o malice_n against_o the_o truth_n if_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n therefore_o have_v be_v trouble_v so_o be_v herode_fw-la and_o all_o jerusalem_n with_o he_o at_o the_o birth_n of_o christ._n if_o they_o blame_v we_o for_o their_o trouble_n so_o do_v the_o pagan_n impute_v all_o their_o trouble_n to_o christian_n and_o their_o religion_n but_o the_o true_a cause_n be_v not_o religion_n but_o the_o hatred_n of_o impious_a papist_n against_o religion_n final_o he_o say_v that_o if_o her_o majesty_n have_v not_o alter_v religion_n than_o her_o kingdom_n have_v be_v flourish_v and_o secure_a and_o that_o she_o will_v have_v have_v issue_n and_o her_o succession_n certain_a and_o continue_v in_o friendship_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o ancient_a confederate_n and_o neither_o have_v war_n abroad_o nor_o treason_n at_o home_n and_o insinuate_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o alteration_n of_o religion_n all_o be_v fall_v out_o contrary_a but_o if_o will_v summer_n have_v write_v this_o discourse_n he_o can_v never_o have_v speak_v more_o foolish_o nor_o impertinent_o for_o first_o i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n for_o diverse_a respect_n be_v never_o more_o flourish_a second_o if_o any_o danger_n hang_v over_o our_o head_n the_o same_o may_v easy_o be_v avoid_v if_o law_n have_v be_v execute_v against_o traitor_n three_o it_o be_v now_o apparent_a to_o the_o world_n that_o want_v of_o issue_n in_o her_o majesty_n have_v not_o hurt_v we_o god_n send_v we_o so_o gracious_a and_o magnanimous_a a_o king_n four_o his_o royal_a majesty_n succeed_v in_o her_o throne_n have_v declare_v that_o she_o want_v no_o succession_n the_o same_o act_n also_o show_v that_o parson_n and_o all_o his_o consort_n be_v a_o pack_n of_o false_a prophet_n parson_n his_o book_n of_o succession_n do_v also_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o false_a traitor_n five_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n to_o tell_v we_o of_o union_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o mediation_n of_o peace_n for_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o agreement_n between_o christian_n and_o antichrist_n here_o the_o noddy_n will_v storm_v that_o his_o holy_a father_n shall_v be_v call_v antichrist_n but_o let_v he_o answer_v my_o reason_n in_o my_o five_o book_n de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n against_o bellarmine_n and_o then_o let_v he_o storm_n while_o his_o heart_n break_v six_o we_o have_v so_o little_a loss_n by_o break_v with_o the_o spanish_a king_n that_o all_o man_n of_o knowledge_n pray_v that_o either_o he_o may_v change_v his_o former_a course_n or_o that_o the_o warrc_n may_v still_o continue_v final_o this_o land_n have_v no_o reason_n either_o to_o fear_v foreign_a war_n or_o domestical_a treason_n unless_o we_o will_v uncouple_v the_o pope_n hound_n that_o come_v hither_o to_o tear_v the_o king_n majesty_n and_o state_n in_o piece_n which_o i_o hope_v he_o and_o his_o council_n of_o state_n will_v look_v unto_o whether_o then_o we_o look_v into_o the_o church_n or_o the_o state_n we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n be_v most_o happy_a and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o all_o her_o adversary_n wit_n and_o malice_n do_v not_o afford_v any_o one_o sound_a argument_n that_o do_v any_o way_n sound_n to_o her_o disgrace_n robert_n parson_n have_v long_o bark_v in_o vain_a against_o her_o proceed_n but_o he_o shall_v remember_v that_o the_o end_n of_o mad_a bark_a cur_n be_v beat_v if_o not_o hang_v the_o second_o book_n show_v the_o miserable_a estate_n of_o papist_n both_o in_o england_n under_o q._n mary_n and_o elsewhere_o under_o the_o pope_n irreligious_a tyrrannie_n weak_o defend_v by_o n._n d._n in_o a_o lewd_a libel_n entitle_v the_o warne-word_n the_o preface_n to_o the_o second_o book_n the_o nature_n of_o
without_o communion_n and_o the_o external_a &_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o hang_n up_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o pire_fw-la and_o the_o divine_a adoration_n give_v to_o it_o upon_o tradition_n but_o all_o these_o observation_n be_v impious_a and_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n some_o tradition_n be_v now_o abolish_v as_o the_o prohibition_n of_o saturday_n fast_n the_o rite_n of_o stand_v when_o we_o pray_v between_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n the_o form_n of_o prayer_n in_o old_a time_n use_v in_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o diverse_a other_o whereof_o some_o be_v mention_v by_o basil_n lib._n de_fw-la spir._n san_z c._n 27._o bellarmine_n also_o lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 2._o confess_v that_o some_o tradition_n be_v temporary_a but_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v temporary_a or_o at_o any_o time_n to_o be_v abolish_v diverse_a tradition_n be_v no_o where_o find_v but_o in_o the_o legend_n missal_n and_o portess_n and_o such_o book_n of_o small_a account_n and_o credit_n as_o for_o example_n the_o ceremony_n &_o rite_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o canon_n the_o formal_a adoration_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n the_o incredible_a narration_n of_o s._n clement_n s._n nicholas_n s._n christopher_n s._n george_n s._n catherine_n s._n dominicke_n s._n francis_n and_o infinite_a other_o saint_n which_o no_o man_n may_v receive_v with_o like_a affection_n as_o he_o receive_v holy_a scripture_n but_o he_o shall_v infinite_o disgrace_v the_o scripture_n and_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v no_o catholic_a furthermore_o if_o the_o papist_n build_v their_o faith_n upon_o tradition_n then_o be_v their_o faith_n humane_a as_o have_v no_o ground_n but_o the_o testimony_n of_o this_o man_n and_o that_o man_n that_o speak_v of_o tradition_n their_o faith_n be_v also_o most_o weak_a and_o fantastical_a as_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o lie_v report_v in_o legend_n and_o the_o fantastical_a ceremony_n contain_v in_o the_o missal_n and_o breviary_n the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v call_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o apostle_n ephes._n 6._o call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n write_v to_o timothy_n he_o say_v holy_a scripture_n 3_o be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o absolute_a and_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n but_o howsoever_o the_o blind_a papist_n favour_v their_o tradition_n yet_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o call_v their_o fardel_n of_o tradition_n god_n eternal_a testament_n or_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o to_o say_v that_o tradition_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a or_o wise_a to_o salvation_n final_o no_o holy_a father_n do_v ever_o make_v ecclesiastical_a tradition_n not_o write_v nor_o contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o only_o commend_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o keep_v by_o custom_n or_o take_v up_o by_o fancy_n and_o record_v only_o in_o humane_a write_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o canonical_a scripture_n infidelitatis_fw-la argumentum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n say_v basil_n it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o infidelity_n and_o a_o most_o certain_a sign_n of_o pride_n if_o a_o man_n will_v reject_v any_o thing_n confess_v that_o be_v write_v or_o bring_v in_o any_o thing_n not_o write_v the_o like_a sayint_n he_o have_v moral_a 72._o c._n 1._o &_o 86._o &_o 22._o neither_o be_v it_o like_v that_o he_o shall_v speak_v of_o tradition_n repugnant_a to_o scripture_n as_o some_o do_v answer_v for_o every_o christian_a man_n know_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o to_o admonish_v man_n of_o that_o have_v be_v superfluous_a si_fw-mi quid_fw-la dicatur_fw-la absque_fw-la scriptura_fw-la say_v chrysostome_n hom_n in_o psal._n 95._o auditorum_fw-la cogitatio_fw-la claudicat_fw-la nunc_fw-la annuens_fw-la nunc_fw-la hasitans_fw-la if_o any_o thing_n be_v speak_v without_o proof_n of_o scripture_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o hearer_n rest_v in_o suspense_n now_o yield_v now_o deny_v neither_o do_v he_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o man_n own_o invention_n but_o also_o of_o all_o other_o man_n report_n or_o device_n without_o ground_n of_o scripture_n in_o his_o thirteen_o homily_n upon_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n he_o call_v scripture_n a_o most_o exact_a rule_n what_o need_v then_o have_v we_o of_o the_o addition_n of_o tradition_n not_o write_v if_o scripture_n be_v a_o most_o exact_a rule_n diabolici_fw-la spiritus_fw-la est_fw-la say_v theophilus_n lib._n 2._o paschal_n aliquid_fw-la extra_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la putare_fw-la divinum_fw-la it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o devilish_a spirit_n to_o think_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v divine_a which_o be_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n what_o reason_n then_o have_v bellarmine_n to_o call_v tradition_n the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 23._o of_o matthew_n speak_v of_o a_o certain_a tradition_n quod_fw-la de_fw-fr scripture_n authoritatem_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la eadem_fw-la facilitate_v contemnitur_fw-la qua_fw-la probatur_fw-la that_o which_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o authority_n of_o scripture_n be_v with_o the_o same_o facility_n contemn_v that_o it_o be_v prove_v and_o write_v upon_o the_o first_o chap._n of_o the_o prophet_n aggey_a he_o say_v that_o the_o sword_n of_o god_n do_v strike_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o man_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n do_v find_v out_o and_o fain_a as_o it_o be_v apostolical_a tradition_n without_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n ubi_fw-la de_fw-la re_fw-la obscurissima_fw-la disputatur_fw-la say_v augustine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la merit_n &_o remiss_a c._n 36._o non_fw-la adiwantibus_fw-la divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la certis_fw-la clarisque_fw-la documentis_fw-la cohibere_fw-la se_fw-la debet_fw-la humana_fw-la praesumptio_fw-la nihil_fw-la faciens_fw-la in_o alteram_fw-la partem_fw-la declinando_fw-la where_o we_o contend_v about_o some_o most_o obscure_a question_n there_o man_n presumption_n ought_v to_o stay_v itself_o decline_v to_o neither_o side_n if_o the_o certain_a and_o clear_a document_n of_o scripture_n help_v we_o not_o the_o next_o ground_n of_o the_o late_a romish_a faith_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n for_o whosoever_o receive_v 4._o not_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o old_a vulgar_a latin_a translation_n be_v pronounce_v accurse_a by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n again_o the_o same_o conventicle_n purpose_v to_o declare_v what_o latin_a edition_n or_o translation_n of_o scripture_n be_v authentical_a determine_v that_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n shall_v be_v authentical_a so_o that_o no_o man_n upon_o any_o pretence_n dare_v or_o may_v reject_v it_o ut_fw-la nemo_fw-la illam_fw-la reijcere_fw-la quovis_fw-la praetextu_fw-la audeat_fw-la vel_fw-la praesumat_fw-la canus_n in_o his_o theological_a common_a place_n as_o he_o call_v they_o doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v corrupt_v the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o this_o diverse_a other_o papistical_a writer_n have_v also_o suppose_v the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o chapter_n ut_fw-la veterum_fw-la do_v 9_o affirm_v plain_o that_o both_o jew_n and_o greek_n have_v corrupt_v the_o copy_n of_o scripture_n in_o those_o tongue_n but_o the_o old_a vulgar_a latin_a translation_n most_o papist_n now_o bold_a to_o be_v sincere_a incorrupt_a and_o pure_a and_o allow_v as_o authentical_a bellarmine_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 2._o say_v that_o albeit_o the_o scripture_n in_o hebrew_n be_v not_o altogether_o corrupt_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o sound_a and_o pure_a but_o have_v certain_a error_n likewise_o lib._n 2._o ca._n 7._o speak_v of_o the_o greek_a text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o sound_v nor_o without_o error_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a always_o to_o correct_v the_o latin_a by_o the_o greek_a but_o in_o the_o same_o book_n cha_z 10._o with_o all_o his_o force_n he_o endeavour_v to_o defend_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n as_o authentical_a the_o which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o plain_a declaration_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o so_o corrupt_a ground_n but_o also_o of_o the_o absurd_a and_o unreasonable_a proceed_v of_o our_o adversary_n the_o prophet_n cry_v out_o against_o the_o jew_n that_o forsake_v god_n the_o fountain_n of_o live_a water_n and_o dig_v to_o themselves_o pit_n or_o cistern_n that_o can_v 2_o hold_v no_o water_n be_v it_o not_o then_o admirable_a that_o any_o shall_v be_v so_o blind_a as_o to_o forsake_v the_o original_a text_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o fly_v to_o the_o corrupt_a cistern_n of_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a translation_n hilary_n upon_o the_o 118._o
do_v every_o where_o use_n this_o word_n minister_n of_o christ_n or_o minister_v of_o the_o gospel_n in_o good_a part_n as_o for_o example_n in_o these_o word_n rom._n 15._o that_o i_o shall_v be_v the_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n towards_o the_o gentile_n and_o 1._o cor._n 3._o who_o be_v paul_n then_o and_o who_o be_v apollo_n but_o the_o minister_n by_o who_o you_o believe_v and_o 2._o cor._n 11._o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o christ._n and_o col._n 1._o he_o be_v a_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ._n be_v he_o not_o then_o a_o impious_a fellow_n &_o do_v he_o not_o declare_v himself_o the_o slave_n of_o satan_n that_o every_o where_o use_v this_o word_n in_o scorn_n and_o contempt_n say_v sir_n minister_n the_o minister_n insolent_a minister_n and_o give_v out_o that_o a_o true_a minister_n and_o false_a minister_n be_v all_o one_o to_o he_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o my_o epistle_n speak_v of_o my_o request_n to_o have_v creswell_n to_o answer_v he_o allude_v to_o christ_n word_n mat._n 20._o &_o mar._n 10._o where_n answer_v the_o son_n of_o zebedey_n he_o say_v nescitis_fw-la quid_fw-la petatis_fw-la for_o make_v himself_o christ_n and_o i_o one_o of_o the_o son_n of_o zebedey_n he_o say_v nescis_fw-la quid_fw-la petis_fw-la so_o shameless_a he_o be_v in_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n &_o abuse_v christ_n word_n to_o his_o scornful_a purpose_n he_o shall_v therefore_o rather_o have_v make_v himself_o a_o bear_n ward_n &_o his_o seditious_a scholar_n beare-whelpe_n &_o creswel_n the_o crier_n of_o the_o game_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o wild_a observation_n upon_o my_o preface_n he_o object_v preach_v unto_o i_o where_o in_o great_a reproach_n he_o call_v i_o preach_v deane_n yet_o the_o apestle_n rom._n 16._o and_o 1._o cor._n 1._o teach_v we_o that_o preach_v be_v the_o mean_n to_o reveal_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o bring_v man_n to_o christ._n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o this_o limb_n of_o antichrist_n do_v hate_n preach_v by_o which_o man_n be_v bring_v from_o antichrist_n to_o christ_n desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o keep_v his_o countryman_n in_o darkness_n and_o to_o reduce_v they_o back_o into_o egypt_n fol._n 22._o he_o jest_v at_o sir_n francis_n hastings_n &_o say_v he_o do_v imitate_v the_o spirit_n of_o some_o hide_a prophet_n but_o what_o be_v more_o impious_a then_o to_o use_v the_o name_n of_o a_o prophet_n &_o of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n to_o make_v up_o a_o jest_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o handle_v controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o fol._n 33._o b._n he_o call_v his_o dispute_n a_o interlude_n do_v you_o then_o think_v that_o this_o man_n deserve_v credit_n that_o of_o a_o mass-priest_n and_o jebusite_n be_v now_o become_v a_o comedian_n &_o seem_v to_o make_v a_o jest_n of_o religion_n eusebius_n like_v not_o the_o gentile_n that_o in_o their_o theater_n make_v sport_n with_o matter_n of_o christian_a 60._o religion_n what_o then_o may_v we_o think_v of_o this_o counterfeit_a christian_a but_o that_o he_o be_v worse_a than_o the_o gentile_n fol._n 29._o he_o defend_v panormitan_n and_o hostiensis_n that_o affirm_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n have_v but_o one_o consistory_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v as_o it_o be_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o christ_n can_v do_v except_o sin_n but_o therein_o he_o profess_v his_o own_o impiety_n rather_o they_o excuse_v they_o for_o who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n impious_a to_o compare_v a_o man_n to_o christ_n in_o all_o thing_n except_o one_o and_o to_o make_v christ_n the_o author_n of_o the_o pope_n sentence_n and_o judgement_n likewise_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o defend_v the_o gloss_n that_o say_v dominus_fw-la deus_fw-la noster_fw-la papa_n c._n 30._o cum_fw-la inter_fw-la extr_n io._n 2d_o de_fw-fr verb._n signif_n as_o do_v parson_n nay_o he_o go_v about_o to_o face_n down_o sir_n francis_n that_o do_v reprehend_v it_o neither_o be_v it_o material_a that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v give_v sometime_o to_o creature_n for_o that_o be_v by_o a_o similitude_n and_o not_o absolute_o nor_o proper_o fol._n 38._o he_o defend_v steuchus_n and_o pope_n nicholas_n that_o say_v that_o constantine_n call_v the_o pope_n god_n and_o hold_v he_o for_o god_n which_o be_v never_o utter_v by_o constantine_n nor_o can_v be_v speak_v without_o blasphemy_n fol._n 40._o he_o maintain_v the_o word_n of_o cusanus_fw-la that_o say_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n change_v but_o s._n james_n say_v apud_fw-la deum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la transmutatio_fw-la there_o be_v no_o change_n with_o god_n 1._o this_o be_v also_o a_o opinion_n of_o the_o arrian_n dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la posse_fw-la mutari_fw-la that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o eternal_a word_n may_v be_v change_v as_o athanasius_n testify_v decret_a nicen._n synod_n contr_n arrian_n furthermore_o it_o be_v blasphemous_a as_o he_o hold_v with_o cusanus_fw-la to_o say_v that_o god_n institution_n in_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v change_v fol._n 42._o he_o say_v sir_n francis_n come_v out_o with_o a_o decalogue_n of_o blessing_n answer_v perhaps_o to_o the_o ten_o commandment_n for_o who_o observation_n the_o jew_n have_v many_o blessing_n promise_v sound_v a_o scurrilous_a jest_n upon_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o emply_v that_o among_o christian_n there_o be_v no_o such_o reward_n for_o performance_n of_o the_o law_n as_o among_o the_o jew_n fol._n 45._o he_o place_v trinitarian_n among_o heretic_n as_o if_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n fol._n 60._o and_o 61._o he_o bear_v his_o reader_n in_o hand_n that_o read_v of_o scripture_n in_o tongue_n understand_v be_v cause_n that_o man_n fall_v into_o heresy_n direct_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n search_v the_o scripture_n say_v he_o for_o in_o they_o you_o think_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n thus_o he_o blaspheme_v the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n with_o his_o impure_a mouth_n fol._n 79._o he_o make_v a_o jest_n of_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 5._o where_o he_o say_v our_o clergy_n may_v sing_v beati_fw-la pauperes_fw-la spiritu_fw-la this_o i_o say_v be_v mere_a impiety_n for_o so_o shall_v he_o sing_v too_o if_o he_o be_v of_o a_o atheist_n and_o have_v forget_v that_o these_o be_v christ_n word_n fol._n 81._o he_o make_v sport_n with_o word_n of_o scripture_n compare_v cadburie_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o yet_o this_o fellow_n be_v esteem_v a_o worthy_a patron_n of_o popery_n such_o a_o patron_n such_o a_o cause_n fol._n 101._o he_o deny_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o mean_v either_o impious_o to_o overthrow_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o else_o to_o prefer_v uncertain_a tradition_n before_o they_o 2._o enconter_v c._n 5._o fol._n 32._o 6._o he_o compare_v read_v of_o scripture_n to_o excess_n of_o apparel_n spend_v much_o and_o play_v at_o dice_n like_o a_o cheat_a companion_n draw_v similitude_n from_o his_o own_o practice_n to_o disgrace_v the_o word_n of_o god_n chap._n 6._o encontr_n 2._o he_o will_v not_o confess_v his_o error_n that_o say_v before_o wardw._n p._n 14._o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o make_v against_o read_v of_o scripture_n who_o can_v deny_v say_v he_o but_o saint_n paul_n talk_v of_o scripture_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o learned_a tongue_n say_v of_o they_o litera_fw-la occidit_fw-la but_o to_o accuse_v man_n for_o read_v of_o scripture_n be_v impious_a and_o savour_v of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o origenist_n and_o swenchfeldians_n error_n that_o condemn_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n neither_o can_v he_o excuse_v himself_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v rash_a read_n for_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o letter_n kill_v talk_v not_o of_o read_v but_o of_o the_o effect_n that_o the_o scripture_n work_v in_o man_n heart_n show_v that_o the_o letter_n condemn_v those_o which_o by_o grace_n be_v not_o move_v effectual_o to_o embrace_v the_o word_n chap._n 11._o encontr_n 2._o most_o blasphemous_o he_o compare_v christ_n miracle_n to_o the_o miracle_n of_o thomas_n becket_n and_o his_o lie_a legend_n to_o the_o scripture_n for_o which_o he_o deserve_v to_o be_v mark_v as_o a_o miraculous_a blasphemer_n in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v that_o material_a honour_n in_o worship_v saint_n hurt_v not_o the_o devout_a nor_o diminish_v their_o merit_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o those_o that_o worship_v thief_n and_o malefactor_n as_o saint_n offend_v not_o but_o rather_o merit_v with_o god_n and_o that_o man_n may_v worship_v they_o know_v not_o who_o nor_o what_o fol._n 99_o he_o maintain_v a_o blasphemous_a prayer_n wherein_o papist_n desire_v
certainty_n of_o faith_n by_o his_o own_o read_n or_o by_o the_o credit_n of_o some_o other_o we_o may_v ask_v his_o friarship_n likewise_o or_o because_o he_o be_v but_o a_o doogeon_n dunce_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o oracle_n of_o papist_n the_o same_o question_n and_o if_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o have_v it_o by_o his_o own_o read_n than_o we_o shall_v much_o wonder_v at_o his_o impudency_n for_o parson_n know_v that_o pope_n read_v little_a or_o nothing_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v ignorant_a of_o school_n divinity_n if_o he_o say_v his_o popeship_n have_v it_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o close_a stool_n then_o be_v the_o same_o but_o filthy_a learning_n especial_o the_o pope_n be_v laxatine_n as_o be_v gregory_n the_o fourteen_o if_o he_o say_v he_o have_v it_o from_o his_o masspriest_n and_o friar_n then_o be_v they_o more_o certain_a oracle_n than_o he_o and_o this_o learning_n must_v come_v from_o the_o tail_n of_o friar_n and_o not_o from_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n parson_n therefore_o to_o clear_v this_o doubt_n fol._n 110._o say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o depend_v on_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o private_a man_n but_o as_o he_o be_v head_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o christ_n universal_a church_n he_o say_v also_o that_o his_o rudeness_n be_v turn_v into_o wisdom_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o christ_n universal_a church_n be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v a_o sot_n as_o he_o be_v a_o private_a man_n and_o wise_a as_o he_o be_v a_o public_a person_n be_v ridiculous_a that_o he_o be_v make_v wise_a and_o learned_a be_v make_v pope_n be_v most_o false_a so_o it_o appear_v parson_n be_v ensnare_v in_o his_o own_o question_n and_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o papist_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o pope_n private_a fancy_n and_o ground_v on_o the_o pope_n chair_n and_o most_o absurd_a and_o sottish_a which_o can_v not_o be_v object_v to_o we_o see_v we_o ground_n ourselves_o upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n who_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n &_o salvation_n speak_v plain_o and_o always_o the_o same_o thing_n most_o constant_o in_o his_o first_o encounter_n chap_n 15._o he_o spend_v much_o talk_n about_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o most_o of_o his_o word_n be_v direct_v contrary_a both_o to_o himself_o and_o to_o his_o holy_a father_n profit_n for_o in_o the_o wardword_n page_n 6._o he_o say_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v the_o squire_n and_o polestar_n which_o every_o one_o be_v to_o follow_v confound_v like_o a_o idiot_n the_o thing_n rule_v with_o the_o rule_n in_o the_o warneword_n fol._n 100_o he_o say_v the_o sum_n and_o corpse_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n deliver_v at_o the_o begin_n by_o the_o miracle_n &_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n profit_n for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o unless_o the_o pope_n determination_n and_o tradition_n ecclesiastical_a be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o confirm_v by_o mracle_n they_o be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n parson_n therefore_o be_v like_a to_o those_o which_o dig_v pit_n for_o other_o 7._o but_o fall_v into_o they_o themselves_o he_o have_v prepare_v weapon_n for_o we_o but_o like_o a_o mad_a sot_n have_v hurt_v himself_o with_o the_o same_o final_o captain_n cowbucke_n like_o a_o noble_a woodcock_n be_v catch_v in_o his_o own_o springe_n chap._n ix_o a_o catalogue_n of_o certain_a principal_a lie_n utter_v by_o robert_n parson_n in_o his_o late_a warne-word_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v speak_v evident_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o 4._o faith_n and_o shall_v give_v heed_n unto_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n which_o speak_v lie_n through_o hypocrisy_n and_o have_v their_o conscience_n burn_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n which_o prophecy_n as_o in_o other_o heretic_n so_o especial_o in_o the_o papist_n we_o may_v see_v most_o plain_o and_o evident_o to_o be_v fulfil_v for_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o ancient_a and_o catholic_a faith_n teach_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o record_v in_o holy_a scripture_n have_v give_v heed_n to_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o believe_v the_o trash_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o lie_v legend_n and_o thereupon_o have_v found_v their_o prohibition_n of_o certain_a meat_n and_o marriage_n and_o such_o like_a doctrine_n of_o devil_n confirm_v their_o opinion_n with_o gross_a lie_n utter_v with_o sear_a conscience_n and_o brazen_a face_n contrary_a to_o all_o show_n of_o truth_n they_o take_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o doctor_n and_o father_n but_o be_v false_a teacher_n and_o unkind_a traitor_n and_o as_o theodoret_n say_v of_o certain_a heretic_n christianorum_fw-la sibi_fw-la appellatione_fw-la imposita_fw-la apertè_fw-la 4._o docent_fw-la contraria_fw-la call_v themselves_o christian_n or_o catholic_n they_o open_o teach_v contrary_a i_o can_v specify_v it_o by_o caesar_n baronius_n and_o bellarmine_n by_o sander_n stapleton_n and_o diverse_a other_o principal_a author_n of_o the_o popish_a sect_n but_o i_o will_v not_o match_v any_o man_n of_o note_n with_o so_o notorious_a a_o dolt_n and_o so_o base_a a_o swad_n as_o robert_n parson_n be_v of_o who_o we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v though_o not_o much_o to_o his_o commendation_n the_o only_a example_n of_o parson_n and_o that_o in_o one_o of_o his_o farthel_n of_o lie_n which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o rip_v up_o shall_v show_v they_o to_o be_v notorious_a and_o bold_a liar_n the_o devilish_a and_o erroneous_a doctrine_n of_o friar_n we_o have_v touch_v before_o and_o shall_v have_v often_o occasion_n to_o mention_v in_o the_o front_n of_o his_o book_n he_o promise_v the_o issue_n of_o three_o former_a treatise_n and_o in_o the_o second_o page_n talk_v of_o eight_o encounter_n but_o he_o falsify_v his_o promise_n and_o lie_v gross_o for_o of_o the_o three_o former_a treatise_n he_o touch_v only_o two_o chapter_n and_o of_o eight_o encounter_n enter_v only_o upon_o two_o further_o he_o decline_v the_o true_a issue_n of_o matter_n and_o run_v bias_n like_o a_o warp_a bowl_n of_o dudgeon_n into_o impertinent_a &_o idle_a question_n do_v he_o not_o therefore_o as_o hierom_n say_v of_o one_o 61_o make_v shipwwracke_n in_o the_o port_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o deliver_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o he_o wrack_v himself_o likewise_o think_v to_o wreak_v his_o malice_n upon_o we_o and_o begin_v with_o a_o gross_a lie_n there_o happen_v say_v he_o some_o few_o year_n past_a he_o note_v 1599_o in_o the_o margin_n as_o often_o also_o before_o a_o certain_a false_a alarm_n of_o a_o spanish_a invasion_n than_o say_v to_o be_v upon_o the_o sea_n towards_o england_n where_o i_o need_v not_o to_o note_v the_o idiotism_n of_o parson_n speech_n that_o talk_v of_o a_o spanish_a invasion_n upon_o the_o sea_n towards_o england_n be_v ellewhere_o note_v but_o only_o i_o will_v touch_v his_o impudency_n in_o lie_v and_o dcny_v that_o about_o this_o time_n the_o spaniard_n be_v ready_a with_o force_n at_o the_o groin_n for_o the_o invasion_n of_o england_n and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o this_o be_v the_o occasion_n that_o move_v sir_n francis_n hastings_n to_o give_v warning_n to_o his_o country_n and_o also_o because_o the_o same_o show_v that_o parson_n be_v very_o sorry_a that_o any_o man_n be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o desscine_n of_o the_o spanish_a ring_n and_o that_o he_o can_v not_o take_v we_o sleep_v and_o so_o closc_o and_o priviliy_v cut_v his_o countryman_n throat_n i_o say_v then_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n most_o notorious_a to_o affirm_v that_o the_o alarm_n give_v upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o spanish_a preparation_n anno_o 1598._o for_o a_o invasion_n of_o some_o part_n of_o england_n be_v false_a and_o prove_v it_o first_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o ring_n who_o recover_v out_o of_o a_o trance_n and_o come_v to_o himself_o ask_v if_o the_o adelantado_n be_v go_v for_o england_n second_o by_o the_o provision_n of_o ship_n and_o man_n make_v at_o the_o groync_n and_o lisbon_n and_o which_o come_v thence_o shape_v their_o course_n for_o england_n albeit_o they_o be_v by_o wether_n beat_v back_o three_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o leake_n a_o mass_n priest_n that_o be_v deal_v with_o all_o to_o come_v for_o england_n four_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o secular_a priest_n in_o their_o reply_n to_o parson_n his_o libel_n fol._n 65._o &_o sequent_a who_o direaly_a charge_n parson_n to_o be_v a_o solicitor_n of_o these_o pretend_a attempt_n anno_fw-la 1598._o five_o by_o parson_n his_o
will_v not_o have_v touch_v any_o matter_n of_o novelty_n or_o absurdity_n for_o therein_o he_o give_v his_o adversary_n just_a occasion_n not_o only_o to_o justify_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v most_o ancient_a and_o consonant_a to_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o to_o declare_v his_o popish_a religion_n refuse_v by_o we_o to_o be_v a_o pack_n of_o novelty_n and_o a_o mass_n of_o gross_a absurdity_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n consist_v of_o a_o triple-crowned_n and_o crosse-slippard_a pope_n with_o his_o guard_n of_o suizzer_n a_o consistory_n of_o purple_a cardinal_n that_o have_v near_o affinity_n to_o the_o purple_a whore_n of_o babylon_n a_o rabble_n of_o rakehellike_a masspriest_n filthy_a monk_n friar_n and_o nun_n with_o a_o people_n worship_v idol_n and_o beléeve_v the_o decretalive_a doctrine_n of_o pope_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o trent_n be_v new_a and_o never_o see_v before_o until_o of_o late_a who_o do_v not_o understand_v that_o both_o the_o ground_n of_o popery_n &_o the_o doctrine_n thereon_o build_v be_v new_a for_o neither_o can_v k._n show_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o decretal_n or_o upon_o tradition_n allow_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o the_o church_n be_v tie_v to_o such_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o romish_a church_n allow_v or_o bind_v to_o follow_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n neither_o can_v he_o prove_v either_o out_o of_o father_n or_o ancient_a writer_n that_o christ_n true_a body_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o every_o pix_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n or_o that_o his_o body_n be_v invisible_a or_o impalpable_a or_o that_o there_o be_v just_a seven_o sacrament_n and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o and_o that_o christian_n receive_v christ_n flesh_n with_o their_o tooth_n and_o mouth_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o he_o have_v two_o sword_n or_o that_o any_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la or_o that_o devil_n torment_n soul_n in_o purgatory_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n deliver_v soul_n from_o those_o torment_n or_o such_o like_a point_n of_o popery_n now_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v more_o absurd_a then_o to_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n can_v eat_v himself_o as_o the_o massė-priest_n say_v christ_n do_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n nay_o that_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o hog_n can_v eat_v christ_n body_n or_o that_o a_o spider_n can_v be_v drown_v in_o his_o blood_n which_o save_v all_o destroy_v none_o that_o can_v receive_v it_o again_o what_o be_v more_o senseless_a then_o to_o adore_v cross_n and_o dumb_a image_n which_o neither_o see_v nor_o hear_v nor_o move_v and_o who_o honour_n be_v not_o see_v or_o know_v of_o those_o saint_n to_o who_o they_o belong_v for_o aught_o we_o know_v three_o what_o be_v more_o inconvenient_a then_o to_o make_v a_o blind_a pope_n that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o all_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o the_o most_o part_n supreme_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o religion_n can_v blind_a man_n judge_v of_o colour_n or_o ignorant_a atheist_n of_o religion_n four_o what_o be_v more_o blasphemous_a then_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n to_o we_o be_v not_o authentical_a unless_o the_o pope_n consign_v they_o unto_o we_o shall_v not_o truth_n be_v truth_n unless_o it_o please_v the_o pope_n to_o say_v it_o final_o see_v faith_n ought_v to_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o build_v upon_o ground_n most_o certain_a the_o popish_a religion_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o absurd_a faith_n and_o a_o false_a religion_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o tradition_n as_o well_o as_o scripture_n of_o which_o tradition_n the_o papist_n can_v yield_v no_o certain_a proof_n but_o be_v drive_v to_o allege_v either_o lie_a legend_n or_o old_a motheaten_a missal_n or_o uncertain_a custom_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n to_o allege_v infinite_a such_o like_a absurdity_n of_o which_o this_o survey_a k._n have_v very_o foolish_o offer_v we_o occasion_n to_o discourse_v at_o large_a he_o do_v also_o very_o simple_o talk_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n survey_v li._n 4._o c._n 2._o for_o if_o papist_n say_v true_o that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v real_o offer_v in_o the_o mass_n and_o that_o every_o external_a sacrifice_n require_v a_o real_a destruction_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o these_o massmonger_n do_v real_o destroy_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la missa_fw-la c._n 2._o say_v that_o a_o external_a sacrifice_n do_v require_v a_o real_a destruction_n requirit_fw-la realem_fw-la destructionem_fw-la be_v then_o this_o fellow_n wise_a trow_v you_o to_o talk_v of_o this_o brave_a sacrifice_n further_o do_v we_o think_v he_o wise_a that_o in_o a_o book_n offer_v to_o the_o king_n do_v rail_v on_o the_o king_n religion_n say_v that_o it_o lead_v unto_o atheism_n final_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o desperate_a folly_n to_o affirm_v that_o our_o religion_n lead_v to_o atheism_n for_o want_v of_o a_o pope_n or_o for_o want_n of_o the_o popish_a mass_n or_o sacrifice_n the_o contrary_a hereof_o rather_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v against_o the_o popish_a religion_n wherein_o as_o we_o may_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o adversary_n own_o confession_n in_o c._n si_fw-la papa_n do_v 40._o the_o pope_n may_v lead_v with_o he_o thousand_o of_o soul_n into_o hell_n the_o mass_n also_o be_v a_o mass_n and_o sink_v of_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n neither_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o repugnant_a to_o christ_n only_a sacrifice_n than_o the_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n modesty_n he_o show_v none_o with_o a_o face_n as_o hard_o as_o a_o lopster_n affirm_v that_o we_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n that_o we_o despoil_v christ_n of_o his_o divinity_n that_o we_o wrong_v he_o in_o his_o office_n of_o redemption_n and_o bereave_v he_o of_o his_o title_n of_o lawgiver_n and_o priest_n and_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n dispair_v now_o what_o great_a impudence_n can_v be_v imagine_v then_o to_o ascribe_v that_o to_o we_o which_o we_o utter_o deny_v and_o disclaim_v nay_o we_o pronounce_v he_o accurse_v whosoever_o shall_v hold_v any_o of_o these_o point_n but_o the_o papist_n in_o some_o thing_n rub_v very_o near_o upon_o these_o rock_n &_o namely_o where_o they_o give_v to_o every_o man_n power_n to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o yield_v that_o other_o beside_o christ_n may_v be_v call_v redéemer_n and_o make_v the_o pope_n a_o lawgiver_n able_a to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n and_o give_v power_n to_o the_o priest_n to_o intercede_v for_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o accept_v it_o as_o he_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n impudent_o also_o he_o belie_v we_o &_o rail_v upon_o we_o say_v that_o we_o make_v every_o private_a man_n spirit_n supreme_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o that_o we_o reject_v father_n &_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o overthrow_v all_o religion_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v he_o only_o rail_v upon_o we_o but_o also_o upon_o scripture_n where_o he_o say_v that_o sound_v ourselves_o only_o on_o scripture_n we_o open_v a_o gate_n to_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n as_o if_o the_o father_n and_o ancient_a counsel_n which_o found_v their_o faith_n upon_o holy_a scripture_n only_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o all_o heresy_n or_o as_o if_o this_o can_v be_v speak_v without_o disgrace_n to_o holy_a scripture_n that_o he_o that_o rely_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n do_v open_v a_o gate_n to_o all_o heresy_n final_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o title_n of_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o great_a monarch_n of_o heaven_n be_v but_o a_o base_a fugitive_a renegued_a companion_n set_v on_o by_o antichrist_n and_o his_o suppost_n to_o rail_v at_o religion_n and_o the_o professor_n thereof_o and_o lie_v without_o rule_n or_o order_n his_o want_n of_o learning_n do_v every_o where_o appear_v throughout_o his_o whole_a survey_v the_o scripture_n he_o cit_v very_o rare_o the_o father_n he_o mistake_v and_o misalleage_v in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n he_o be_v but_o a_o novice_n nay_o albeit_o he_o talk_v much_o of_o our_o religion_n yet_o he_o understandeth_v not_o what_o we_o profess_v what_o we_o reject_v final_o although_o the_o fellow_n be_v but_o a_o poor_a translator_n and_o collector_n of_o other_o man_n slander_n yet_o can_v he_o not_o well_o relate_v that_o which_o be_v translate_v out_o of_o other_o his_o principal_a witness_n be_v staphilus_n cochleus_n bolser_n nicol_n bear_v stapleton_n surius_n and_o such_o like_a rail_n and_o base_a author_n be_v it_o then_o likely_a that_o he_o shall_v show_v
fornication_n be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n they_o tolerate_v common_a whore_n as_o do_v simon_n magus_n and_o other_o heretic_n and_o now_o in_o rome_n the_o pope_n not_o withstand_v his_o pretend_a holiness_n receive_v a_o tribute_n from_o they_o they_o do_v also_o sell_v mass_n imposition_n of_o hand_n benefice_n and_o make_v money_n of_o their_o god_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o their_o religion_n which_o savour_v of_o the_o heresy_n of_o simon_n magus_n venalianobis_fw-la say_v mantuan_n templa_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la altaria_fw-la sacra_fw-la coronae_fw-la ignis_fw-la thura_fw-la preces_fw-la coelum_fw-la est_fw-la venale_n deusque_fw-la that_o be_v church_n priest_n altar_n sacrament_n crown_n fire_n incense_n prayer_n yea_o heaven_n and_o god_n himself_o be_v set_v to_o sale_n among_o us._n brigit_fw-la in_o her_o revelation_n cap._n 232._o say_v priest_n be_v worse_o than_o judas_n for_o that_o he_o sell_v christ_n for_o money_n but_o they_o barter_v he_o for_o all_o commodity_n as_o the_o basilidian_o worship_v image_n use_v enchantment_n 23._o and_o superstitious_a adjuration_n so_o do_v they_o worship_v not_o only_o material_a image_n but_o also_o their_o fantastical_a imagination_n they_o also_o exorcise_v water_n and_o salt_n say_v exorcizo_fw-la te_fw-la creatura_fw-la aquae_fw-la &_o again_o exorcizo_fw-la te_fw-la creatura_fw-la salis_fw-la with_o the_o heretic_n call_v staurolatrae_n they_o worship_v the_o cross_n with_o the_o angelike_n they_o serve_v and_o worship_v angel_n with_o the_o armenian_n they_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o nazarite_n mingle_v jewish_a ceremony_n with_o christian_n religion_n so_o do_v papist_n borrow_v from_o they_o their_o paschal_n lamb_n their_o jubiley_n their_o priestly_a apparel_n their_o altar_n their_o leviticall_a rite_n and_o diverse_a other_o jewish_a ceremony_n irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o advers._n haeres_fw-la cap._n 30._o say_v that_o martion_n and_o saturninus_n first_o teach_v abstinence_n from_o live_a creature_n from_o who_o the_o papist_n seem_v to_o have_v borrow_v their_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n as_o less_o holy_a than_o other_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v epist._n 86._o ad_fw-la casulanum_fw-la never_o appoint_v what_o day_n we_o ought_v to_o fast_o and_o what_o not_o the_o papist_n therefore_o have_v their_o fast_n from_o other_o then_o from_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n from_o the_o manicheys_n they_o borrow_v their_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o chapt._n relatum_fw-la and_o comperimus_fw-la do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi and_o by_o leo_n his_o four_o sermon_n the_o quadrage_n the_o helcesaites_n make_v christ_n in_o heaven_n to_o differ_v from_o christ_n on_o earth_n as_o say_v theodoret_n haeret_fw-la fabul_a lib._n 2._o cap._n de_fw-fr helcesaeis_n his_o word_n be_v these_o christum_fw-la non_fw-la unum_fw-la dicunt_fw-la sed_fw-la hunc_fw-la quidem_fw-la infernè_fw-la illumverò_fw-la supernè_fw-la so_o likewise_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o christ_n body_n in_o heaven_n be_v visible_a and_o palpable_a but_o not_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o pelagian_n they_o concur_v in_o many_o point_n as_o i_o have_v at_o large_a declare_v in_o my_o late_a challenge_n hoc_fw-la pelagiani_n audent_fw-la dicere_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-mi bono_fw-mi perseverantiae_fw-la c._n 5._o hominem_fw-la iustum_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la vita_fw-la nullum_fw-la habere_fw-la peccatum_fw-la now_o how_o can_v they_o clear_v themselves_o from_o this_o that_o hold_v that_o a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o the_o apostle_n paul_n deny_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n the_o papist_n have_v teach_v quite_o contrary_a he_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o glory_v in_o our_o work_n they_o say_v quite_o contrary_a that_o man_n may_v glory_v in_o their_o work_n he_o show_v that_o as_o many_o as_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n be_v also_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o blood_n they_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o all_o the_o communicant_n beside_o the_o priest_n our_o saviour_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n say_v accipite_fw-la manducate_v that_o be_v take_v and_o eat_v these_o imagine_v that_o he_o offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n real_o and_o corporal_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o that_o he_o appoint_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n actual_o to_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o mass_n and_o not_o always_o to_o be_v sacramental_o and_o spiritual_o receive_v of_o the_o communicant_n the_o papist_n teach_v that_o wicked_a man_n reprobate_n and_o devil_n may_v have_v true_a faith_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o true_a faith_n iustian_v &_o that_o they_o which_o have_v it_o live_v by_o faith_n common_o they_o hold_v that_o charity_n be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a then_o can_v not_o faith_n subsist_v without_o charity_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o faith_n as_o faith_n do_v make_v the_o just_a to_o live_v and_o ancient_a christian_n be_v always_o ignorant_a of_o these_o philosophical_a fancy_n they_o hold_v that_o diverse_a sin_n be_v commit_v which_o be_v not_o forbid_v by_o god_n law_n but_o this_o show_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o they_o suppose_v be_v not_o perfect_a and_o that_o the_o law_n of_o man_n have_v nothing_o in_o they_o of_o god_n law_n bind_v the_o conscience_n as_o well_o as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n final_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n be_v erroneous_a the_o same_o be_v found_v partly_o upon_o the_o decretal_n of_o pope_n partly_o upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n contain_v partly_o in_o their_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n partly_o in_o their_o fabulous_a legend_n and_o partly_o in_o the_o chest_n of_o the_o pope_n breast_n and_o partly_o upon_o the_o old_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o the_o romanist_n hold_v to_o be_v authentical_a and_o partly_o upon_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o since_o it_o please_v god_n to_o put_v into_o her_o majesty_n royal_a heart_n a_o resolution_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n that_o be_v so_o much_o deform_v by_o the_o pharisaical_a and_o superstitious_a addition_n of_o that_o papist_n &_o to_o restore_v religion_n according_a to_o that_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o prophet_n not_o only_o all_o former_a heresy_n &_o error_n be_v abolish_v but_o also_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v restore_v the_o which_o be_v apparent_a not_o only_o by_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n which_o we_o profess_v but_o also_o by_o our_o public_a confession_n and_o apology_n which_o we_o have_v publish_v at_o diverse_a time_n and_o in_o part_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o secret_a confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o albeit_o they_o will_v glad_o cavil_v against_o our_o confession_n yet_o they_o take_v their_o ground_n common_o out_o of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n melancthon_n and_o other_o not_o often_o meddle_v with_o our_o confession_n diverse_a of_o they_o also_o be_v wont_a to_o call_v we_o negative_a divine_n which_o argue_v that_o so_o much_o as_o we_o hold_v positive_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n confess_v by_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o and_o that_o we_o bring_v in_o no_o new_a faith_n but_o that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v hold_v and_o maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n desire_v only_o that_o the_o positive_a error_n heresy_n and_o superstition_n of_o papist_n may_v be_v abolish_v wherefore_o as_o christian_n in_o time_n pass_v extol_v constantine_n the_o great_a that_o give_v liberty_n to_o all_o his_o subject_n to_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n that_o assemble_v 5._o synod_n of_o bishop_n and_o confirm_v their_o decree_n so_o ought_v 23._o we_o to_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o our_o gracious_a queen_n that_o give_v liberty_n to_o all_o christian_n to_o profess_v the_o truth_n that_o cause_v diverse_a assembly_n of_o learned_a man_n and_o ratify_v the_o christian_a faith_n by_o her_o authority_n chap._n iii_o of_o the_o true_a and_o sincere_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n restore_v in_o england_n of_o the_o holy_a rite_n and_o sacrament_n of_o christian_a religion_n we_o can_v speak_v without_o grief_n of_o heart_n when_o we_o consider_v how_o shameful_o they_o be_v abuse_v mangle_a and_o corrupt_v by_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n where_o christ_n ordain_v only_o two_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n baptism_n where_o he_o say_v teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o 18._o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n where_o he_o say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v the_o
the_o bishop_n know_v neither_o old_a nor_o new_a testament_n in_o ore_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la say_v he_o that_o write_v the_o treatise_n title_v onus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la est_fw-la lex_fw-la vanitatis_fw-la pro_fw-la lege_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o law_n of_o vanity_n be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o bishop_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o law_n of_o truth_n they_o shall_v build_v the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o as_o brigit_fw-la say_v they_o build_v the_o 10._o devil_n two_o city_n catherine_n of_o sienna_n cap._n 129._o say_v that_o unprofitable_a pastor_n do_v not_o drive_v the_o wolf_n from_o the_o sheep_n for_o that_o they_o want_v the_o dog_n of_o conscience_n and_o staff_n of_o justice_n she_o say_v also_o that_o they_o feed_v not_o their_o sheep_n in_o the_o pasture_n of_o salvation_n nor_o lead_v they_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n quid_fw-la hodiè_fw-la erant_fw-la episcopi_fw-la say_v the_o cardinal_n of_o arles_n in_o the_o meeting_n at_o basil_n 1._o nisi_fw-la umbrae_fw-la quaedam_fw-la quid_fw-la plus_fw-la eye_n restabat_fw-la quam_fw-la baculus_fw-la &_o mitra_fw-la what_o be_v bishop_n of_o our_o time_n but_o shadow_n what_o remain_v to_o they_o more_o than_o a_o staff_n and_o a_o mitre_n if_o any_o be_v more_o studieu_n than_o other_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n but_o in_o law_n and_o matter_n of_o state_n and_o story_n the_o mass_n priest_n in_o time_n past_o use_v not_o to_o study_v scripture_n nor_o to_o preach_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o other_o to_o expound_v in_o english_a the_o créed_a &_o law_n and_o some_o few_o thing_n more_o and_o that_o only_a at_o four_o time_n in_o the_o year_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o chapter_n ignorantia_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la de_fw-fr officio_fw-la archipresbyteri_fw-la in_o our_o provincial_a constitution_n now_o to_o do_v this_o little_a learning_n be_v require_v and_o less_o understanding_n clerk_n say_v math._n paris_n in_o the_o life_n of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n be_v then_o so_o unlearned_a that_o those_o that_o understand_v grammar_n be_v a_o wonderment_n to_o their_o fellow_n adeo_fw-la literatura_fw-la carebant_fw-la ut_fw-la caeteris_fw-la esset_fw-la stupori_fw-la qui_fw-la grammaticam_fw-la didicisset_fw-la the_o friar_n be_v then_o the_o only_a preacher_n upon_o who_o teach_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n whole_o rely_v unless_o percase_o some_o will_v suppose_v that_o faith_n may_v come_v by_o gaze_v on_o the_o priest_n at_o mass_n or_o on_o the_o crucifix_n and_o dumb_a image_n which_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v be_v teacher_n of_o vanity_n but_o these_o friar_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n unlearned_a as_o the_o sermon_n of_o menot_n maillard_n bromeyard_n &_o other_o will_v teftify_v second_o they_o preach_v only_o in_o advent_a and_o lent_n &_o some_o few_o extraordinary_a time_n and_o three_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o sermon_n be_v either_o fable_n or_o else_o philosophical_a position_n or_o idle_a question_n little_o tend_v to_o edification_n or_o matter_n for_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o final_o they_o come_v without_o lawful_a mission_n to_o teach_v lie_v rather_o than_o the_o truth_n to_o destroy_v rather_o than_o to_o build_v to_o make_v a_o schism_n and_o division_n rather_o than_o to_o reduce_v man_n to_o love_n unity_n and_o concord_n dante_n show_v that_o the_o friar_n of_o his_o time_n wrest_a scripture_n parad_a and_o little_o regard_v they_o quando_fw-la e_fw-la posposta_fw-la la_fw-fr divina_fw-la scrittura_fw-la &_o quando_fw-la e_fw-la torta_fw-la again_o he_o say_v they_o desire_v their_o own_o glory_n and_o preach_v their_o own_o invention_n hide_v the_o gospel_n in_o silence_n per_fw-la apparer_fw-la ciascun_fw-la s'ingegna_fw-la &_o face_n sue_n inventioni_fw-la &_o quelle_fw-fr son_fw-fr trascorse_n dam_fw-la predicanti_fw-la e'luangelio_fw-la si_fw-la tace_fw-la he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o tell_v fable_n and_o feed_v ignorant_a and_o simple_a people_n with_o wind_n no_o ha_o in_o fiorenza_n tanti_fw-la lupi_fw-la &_o bindi_n quante_n si_fw-la fat_a favole_fw-mi per_fw-mi anno_fw-la in_o pergamo_fw-la si_fw-la gridan_n quinci_fw-la &_o quindi_fw-la si_fw-la che_fw-it le_fw-fr pecorelle_fw-fr che_fw-mi non_fw-fr sanno_fw-mi tornan_n dal_n pasco_fw-la pasciute_v di_fw-it vento_fw-la agnellus_n general_a of_o the_o minorite_n hear_v the_o doctor_n long._n dispute_n whether_o this_o proposition_n there_o be_v a_o god_n be_v true_a exclaim_v against_o this_o manner_n of_o deal_v and_o detest_v such_o question_n cornelius_z agrippa_z speaking_z of_o school_n doctor_n say_v that_o scholast_n for_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o preach_v mere_a toy_n and_o humane_a word_n preach_v a_o new_a gospel_n and_o adulterate_v the_o word_n of_o god_n pro_fw-la euangelijs_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la meras_fw-la nugas_fw-la &_o humana_fw-la verba_fw-la crepant_fw-la praedicantes_fw-la evangelium_fw-la adulterantes_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la likewise_o do_v orthuinus_n gratius_n in_o praefat._n ante_fw-la lib._n petri_n de_fw-fr alliac_n de_fw-mi reform_v eccles._n speak_v against_o scholastical_a divinity_n say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v ingenious_a to_o lay_v burden_n on_o man_n soul_n and_o again_o cunning_a in_o devise_v excuse_n for_o sin_n est_fw-la ingeniosa_fw-la cura_fw-la ad_fw-la aggravandas_fw-la conscientias_fw-la tum_fw-la rursus_fw-la adinueniendas_fw-la excusationes_fw-la in_o peccatis_fw-la multo_fw-la solertissima_fw-la robertus_fw-la gallus_n vis_fw-la 34._o say_v that_o the_o friar_n preach_v idle_a and_o curious_a question_n be_v design_v by_o a_o vision_n wherein_o a_o man_n appear_v load_v with_o bread_n but_o gnaw_v a_o long_a stone_n with_o a_o snake_n head_n appear_v at_o either_o end_n which_o resemblance_n be_v not_o altogether_o unfit_a see_v those_o that_o leave_v the_o instruction_n of_o scripture_n to_o scan_v such_o endless_a question_n leave_v bread_n to_o gnaw_v a_o stone_n be_v in_o the_o end_n sting_v with_o their_o own_o curiosity_n see_v then_o that_o the_o preach_n of_o popish_a doctor_n be_v so_o mix_v with_o idle_a tale_n endless_a question_n and_o philosophical_a discourse_n what_o profit_n can_v thereof_o redound_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n quid_fw-la athenis_fw-la &_o hierosolymis_fw-la say_v tertullian_n the_o prescript_n advers._n haeret_fw-la quid_fw-la academiae_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la what_o concord_n be_v there_o between_o athens_n and_o jerusalem_n between_o philosopher_n school_n and_o the_o church_n cardinal_n prat_n archbishop_n as_o he_o call_v himself_o of_o 36._o sens_n in_o france_n in_o his_o visitation_n make_v a_o law_n against_o such_o preacher_n as_o like_o vile_a buffoon_n rehearse_v ridiculous_a old_a wife_n tale_n to_o move_v their_o auditory_a to_o laughter_n which_o show_v that_o this_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v a_o common_a fault_n their_o preach_n be_v also_o very_o contentious_a and_o full_a of_o quarrel_n one_o call_v another_o heretic_n schismatic_n sacrilegious_a false_a prophet_n and_o raven_a wolf_n and_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o scripture_n and_o argument_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o waldense_n in_o their_o confession_n to_o ladislaus_n vbertinus_n affirm_v that_o the_o locust_n mention_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n of_o s._n john_n do_v signify_v the_o beg_a friar_n because_o they_o be_v scurrilous_a and_o light_a skipiacke_n live_v carnal_o and_o gnaw_v the_o scripture_n quia_fw-la scurriles_fw-la leve_n volatiles_fw-la carnales_fw-la rodentes_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la commission_n for_o their_o preach_v these_o friar_n can_v show_v none_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o talk_v of_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n leave_v no_o room_n for_o such_o vermin_n the_o doctor_n of_o paris_n say_v that_o friar_n come_v paris_n without_o canonical_a mission_n that_o they_o preach_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n that_o they_o brag_v of_o their_o knowledge_n and_o preach_v for_o gain_v how_o then_o be_v it_o like_v that_o such_o fellow_n can_v build_v the_o church_n of_o god_n can_v we_o look_v for_o truth_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o false_a prophet_n or_o edification_n by_o they_o that_o come_v without_o call_v in_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o hildegardis_n we_o read_v that_o the_o principal_a study_n and_o endeavour_n of_o these_o false_a teacher_n shall_v be_v to_o resist_v true_a teacher_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o slaughter_n by_o their_o intelligence_n with_o great_a man_n see_v then_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o other_o teacher_n than_o these_o false_a apostle_n or_o rather_o seducer_n and_o hear_v nothing_o but_o tale_n and_o idle_a question_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v profit_v by_o such_o sermon_n much_o less_o therefore_o be_v it_o likely_a they_o shall_v grow_v in_o knowledge_n see_v neither_o their_o leader_n be_v desirous_a to_o teach_v they_o nor_o they_o to_o learn_v of_o their_o teacher_n linwood_n speak_v of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o créede_v say_v it_o gloss._n be_v sufficient_a for_o lay_v and_o simple_a man_n to_o believe_v they_o with_o a_o implicit_a faith_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o
next_o this_o fashion_n of_o catechise_n be_v but_o in_o few_o place_n exercise_v and_o by_o the_o jebusite_n in_o imitation_n of_o true_a teacher_n for_o so_o the_o devil_n minister_n imitate_v christ_n apostle_n three_o the_o catechism_n of_o papist_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o creed_n the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la the_o law_n and_o seven_o sacrament_n as_o bellarmine_n devide_v his_o doctrine_n in_o his_o italian_a catechism_n and_o of_o aue_fw-la maria_n and_o other_o device_n as_o other_o catechism_n show_v four_o there_o be_v much_o mixture_n of_o ceremony_n and_o false_a doctrine_n final_o the_o italian_n and_o spaniard_n be_v little_o wise_a for_o this_o catechise_n he_o tell_v we_o also_o in_o his_o wardw._n p._n 12._o of_o the_o profound_a learning_n of_o the_o school-doctor_n in_o spain_n and_o italy_n and_o say_v we_o dare_v not_o once_o appear_v to_o dispute_v with_o they_o but_o neither_o make_v the_o skill_n of_o the_o diverse_a sect_n of_o friar_n for_o the_o priest_n or_o the_o people_n that_o be_v not_o teach_v by_o they_o nor_o be_v their_o learning_n skill_n in_o scripture_n or_o father_n which_o few_o of_o they_o read_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o ferdinand_n vellosillo_n in_o his_o preface_n upon_o his_o advertence_n on_o the_o doctor_n nor_o be_v there_o so_o many_o learned_a as_o be_v pretend_v true_a it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v now_o more_o diligent_a than_o they_o be_v in_o time_n past_a but_o it_o be_v rather_o to_o suppress_v truth_n then_o to_o teach_v truth_n for_o they_o teach_v seldom_o and_o talk_v of_o vain_a speculation_n and_o desire_v nothing_o but_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v ignorant_a in_o god_n word_n which_o popish_a ignorance_n be_v now_o almost_o as_o much_o in_o italy_n and_o spain_n as_o in_o time_n past_a god_n enlighten_v those_o nation_n and_o make_v they_o once_o see_v the_o truth_n and_o understand_v their_o ignorance_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o common_a work_n of_o papist_n but_o may_v our_o adversary_n say_v albeit_o in_o time_n past_o man_n be_v not_o so_o learned_a yet_o they_o live_v better_a than_o man_n of_o our_o time_n and_o true_a it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o man_n 8_o unlearned_a earnest_o contend_v for_o heaven_n while_o learned_a man_n without_o understanding_n wallow_v in_o flesh_n and_o blood_n if_o we_o understand_v it_o of_o those_o that_o only_o have_v learned_a christ_n jesus_n and_o he_o crucify_v and_o be_v unskilful_a in_o other_o matter_n and_o not_o of_o those_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a people_n that_o albeit_o run_v in_o worldly_a affair_n be_v notwithstanding_o utter_o ignorant_a of_o christ_n jesus_n wherefore_o as_o we_o have_v before_o prove_v the_o papist_n to_o be_v common_o most_o ignorant_a of_o divine_a matter_n so_o now_o we_o will_v brief_o touch_v their_o life_n and_o action_n to_o see_v if_o their_o manner_n correspond_v with_o their_o skill_n and_o the_o rather_o i_o follow_v this_o course_n for_o that_o schoppius_n tell_v we_o indulgen_fw-mi of_o their_o brave_a work_n do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o jubiley_n and_o robert_n parson_n be_v ever_o talk_v of_o good_a work_n as_o if_o that_o be_v the_o proper_a possession_n of_o his_o consort_n wherein_o i_o will_v not_o have_v any_o to_o think_v that_o when_o i_o name_v papist_n i_o mean_v to_o speak_v against_o all_o our_o forefather_n who_o indeed_o positive_o hold_v not_o all_o point_n of_o popery_n but_o rather_o profess_a christianity_n positive_o albeit_o they_o do_v not_o resolute_o deny_v popish_a error_n but_o only_a such_o as_o be_v the_o chief_a founder_n teacher_n and_o maintainer_n of_o popish_a religion_n and_o which_o with_o great_a zeal_n persecute_v all_o that_o resist_v it_o or_o refuse_v it_o these_o fellow_n therefore_o i_o say_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o glory_n or_o boast_v of_o their_o work_n for_o whether_o we_o look_v into_o the_o diversity_n of_o time_n or_o state_n of_o man_n or_o else_o consider_v every_o virtue_n and_o good_a work_n by_o itself_o or_o look_v into_o the_o country_n drown_v in_o popery_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o zelator_n and_o chief_a pillar_n of_o popery_n very_o defective_a and_o no_o way_n answerable_a to_o the_o commendation_n which_o their_o hire_a proctor_n do_v common_o give_v they_o for_o the_o time_n before_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1500_o i_o have_v already_o allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o brigit_fw-la petrarch_n catherine_n of_o sienna_n boccace_n breidenbach_n hugetin_n robertus_fw-la gallus_n math._n paris_n and_o diverse_a other_o unto_o which_o i_o will_v add_v the_o testimony_n of_o platina_n vspergensis_n and_o wernerus_fw-la i_o need_v not_o say_v say_v platina_n how_o excessive_a the_o covetousness_n marcellino_n of_o priest_n be_v and_o of_o those_o especial_o that_o be_v in_o principal_a place_n nor_o how_o great_a be_v their_o lust_n ambition_n pomp_n pride_n sloth_n ignorance_n of_o themselves_o and_o of_o christian_a doctrine_n how_o corrupt_a their_o religion_n be_v and_o rather_o dissemble_v then_o true_a and_o how_o corrupt_a be_v their_o manner_n in_o profane_a man_n who_o they_o call_v secular_a to_o be_v detest_v see_v they_o offend_v so_o open_o and_o public_o as_o if_o they_o seek_v praise_v hereby_o he_o say_v their_o vice_n be_v ibidem_fw-la so_o increase_v that_o they_o seem_v scarce_o to_o leave_v any_o place_n for_o god_n mercy_n and_o in_o gregory_n the_o four_o in_o omnem_fw-la luxum_fw-la &_o libidinem_fw-la se_fw-la effundit_fw-la ecclesiasticus_fw-la ordo_fw-la the_o clergy_n say_v he_o do_v run_v headlong_o into_o all_o luxuriousnesse_n and_o lust_n if_o then_o the_o people_n follow_v such_o guide_n we_o may_v well_o imagine_v in_o what_o term_n the_o church_n stand_v in_o his_o time_n then_o begin_v mischief_n to_o be_v multiply_v say_v vrspergensis_n there_o spring_v up_o hatred_n deceit_n &_o treason_n heu_fw-la heu_fw-la domine_fw-la deus_fw-la say_v wernerus_n temp_n quomodo_fw-la obscuratum_fw-la est_fw-la aurum_fw-la mutatus_fw-la est_fw-la colour_n optimus_fw-la qualia_fw-la contigisse_fw-la circa_fw-la hac_fw-la tempora_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la &_o sede_fw-la apostolica_fw-la quam_fw-la usque_fw-la huc_fw-la tanto_fw-la zelo_fw-la custodivisti_fw-la legimus_fw-la scandala_fw-la quales_fw-la contentiones_fw-la &_o amulationes_fw-la sectae_fw-la invidiae_fw-la ambition_n intrusiones_fw-la persecutiones_fw-la o_o tempus_fw-la pessimum_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la defecit_fw-la sanctus_fw-la &_o diminutae_fw-la sunt_fw-la veritates_fw-la à_fw-la silijs_fw-la hominum_fw-la alas_o alas_o o_o lord_n god_n how_o be_v our_o gold_n obscure_v how_o be_v the_o good_a colour_n or_o state_n of_o thing_n change_v what_o scandal_n do_v we_o read_v to_o have_v happen_v about_o these_o time_n in_o the_o church_n and_o apostolic_a see_v which_o hitherto_o thou_o have_v with_o such_o zeal_n preserve_v what_o contention_n and_o emulation_n sect_n envy_n ambition_n intrusion_n and_o persecution_n o_o most_o wicked_a time_n in_o which_o holy_a man_n be_v fail_v and_o truth_n diminish_v from_o the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o say_v also_o that_o about_o one_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n christian_a faith_n begin_v to_o fail_v and_o that_o man_n give_v themselves_o to_o soothsay_v and_o witchcraft_n the_o wickedness_n and_o profaneness_n of_o latter_a time_n and_o of_o time_n present_a the_o papist_n themselves_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v and_o yet_o because_o robert_n parson_n think_v so_o well_o of_o his_o consort_n i_o will_v have_v he_o to_o turn_v back_o to_o that_o which_o be_v say_v already_o let_v he_o also_o read_v that_o which_o follow_v out_o of_o late_a writer_n apud_fw-la plerosque_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la primores_fw-la say_v john_n picus_n of_o mirandula_n ad_fw-la quorum_fw-la exemplum_fw-la 10._o componi_fw-la atque_fw-la formari_fw-la plebs_fw-la ignara_fw-la debuisset_fw-la aut_fw-la nullus_fw-la aut_fw-la certè_fw-la exiguus_fw-la dei_fw-la cultus_fw-la nulla_fw-la benè_fw-la vivendi_fw-la ratio_fw-la atque_fw-la institutio_fw-la nullus_fw-la pudor_fw-la nulla_fw-la modestia_fw-la justitia_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o odium_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o gratiam_fw-la declinavit_fw-la piet_fw-la as_o penè_fw-la in_o superstitionem_fw-la procubuit_fw-la palanique_n omnibus_fw-la in_o hominum_fw-la ordinibus_fw-la peccatur_fw-la sic_fw-la ut_fw-la saepenumero_fw-la virtus_fw-la probis_fw-la viris_fw-la vitio_fw-la vertatur_fw-la vitia_fw-la loco_fw-la virtutum_fw-la honorari_fw-la soleant_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la suorum_fw-la criminum_fw-la quasi_fw-la septa_fw-la &_o tanquam_fw-la moenia_fw-la &_o inauditam_fw-la petulantiam_fw-la &_o diuturnitatem_fw-la impunitatem_fw-la esse_fw-la putaverunt_fw-la among_o the_o most_o of_o the_o principal_a man_n of_o our_o religion_n say_v he_o after_o who_o example_n the_o ignorant_a sort_n of_o people_n ought_v to_o conform_v themselves_o there_o be_v either_o none_o or_o but_o little_a religion_n no_o order_n or_o institution_n of_o good_a live_n no_o shame_n no_o modesty_n justice_n incline_v to_o hatred_n or_o favour_n godliness_n be_v almost_o overthrow_v by_o superstition_n and_o all_o state_n of_o man_n do_v sin_n public_o and_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o oftentimes_o
and_o the_o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n cap._n 31._o talk_v of_o the_o pope_n title_n say_v that_o he_o be_v call_v a_o foundation_n and_o that_o he_o be_v fundamentum_fw-la aedificij_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o foundation_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o book_n the_o pontif._n rom._n speak_v of_o these_o word_n of_o isaiah_n ecce_fw-la ponam_fw-la in_o fundamentis_fw-la zion_n lapidem_fw-la lapidem_fw-la probatum_fw-la angularem_fw-la say_v that_o these_o word_n not_o unfit_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o if_o he_o be_v that_o corner_n stone_n that_o be_v place_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o zion_n stapleton_n likewise_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o the_o relection_n of_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n affirm_v desperate_o that_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v necessary_o place_v in_o his_o authority_n teach_v us._n it_o be_v much_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v any_o way_n the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n but_o to_o make_v he_o a_o necessary_a foundation_n be_v a_o great_a presumption_n than_o i_o find_v in_o his_o fellow_n his_o word_n be_v these_o in_o hac_fw-la docentis_fw-la hominis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la deum_fw-la loquentem_fw-la audimus_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la cognoscendae_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la necessariò_fw-la poni_fw-la cernimus_fw-la neither_o can_v any_o of_o they_o well_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v see_v general_o they_o prove_v the_o pope_n authority_n out_o of_o christ_n word_n to_o peter_n mat._n 16._o for_o if_o these_o word_n be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o pope_n but_o of_o christ_n who_o peter_n confess_v then_o be_v they_o fond_o allege_v for_o justification_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o sum_n all_o their_o practice_n show_v that_o the_o pope_n to_o they_o be_v summa_fw-la summarum_fw-la and_o the_o corner_n stone_n and_o chief_a foundation_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n for_o allege_v scripture_n they_o quarrel_n about_o the_o interpretation_n and_o admit_v no_o sense_n but_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n allow_v although_o his_o gloss_n and_o interpretation_n be_v never_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o text_n again_o allege_v counsel_n they_o inquire_v if_o the_o pope_n have_v allow_v they_o allege_v father_n speak_v against_o the_o pope_n they_o reject_v they_o but_o allege_v the_o pope_n determination_n there_o they_o stop_v like_o resty_a jade_n and_o will_v not_o be_v draw_v further_a so_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o resolution_n be_v the_o foundation_n nay_o they_o be_v all_o in_o all_o with_o papist_n but_o this_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n isaiah_n 8._o and_o 28._o mat._n 16._o and_o 1._o cor._n 3._o and_o ephes._n 2._o where_o christ_n be_v make_v the_o corner_n stone_n and_o sole_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o contrary_a to_o all_o father_n and_o good_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n the_o same_o be_v also_o most_o absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o reason_n for_o first_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n then_o shall_v there_o be_v as_o many_o foundation_n as_o pope_n second_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o foundation_n diverse_a from_o christ._n three_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v differ_v one_o from_o another_o one_o pope_n centradict_v and_o cross_v another_o four_o the_o pope_n be_v sometime_o reprobate_n and_o damn_a hell_n shall_v prevail_v against_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v most_o absurd_a five_o the_o church_n during_o the_o vacation_n shall_v be_v without_o foundation_n and_o a_o woman_n be_v pope_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o a_o woman_n final_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o man_n subject_a to_o infirmity_n error_n and_o mutation_n and_o not_o upon_o christ_n jesus_n the_o unmoveable_a rock_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n talk_v of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o 4._o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o of_o tradition_n as_o well_o concern_v faith_n as_o manner_n do_v receive_v both_o with_o equal_a affection_n and_o reverence_n as_o it_o be_v either_o deliver_v unto_o we_o either_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n or_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o keep_v by_o continual_a succession_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n omnes_fw-la libros_fw-la tam_fw-la veteris_fw-la quam_fw-la novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la cum_fw-la utriusque_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la sit_fw-la author_n nec_fw-la non_fw-la traditiones_fw-la ipsas_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la mores_fw-la pertinentes_fw-la tanquam_fw-la vel_fw-la ore_fw-la tenus_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la vel_fw-la à_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it dictatas_fw-la &_o continua_fw-la successione_n in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la conseruatus_fw-la pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la affectis_fw-la ac_fw-la reverentia_fw-la suscipit_fw-la ac_fw-la veneratur_fw-la those_o likewise_o among_o the_o papist_n that_o proceed_v doctor_n or_o take_v any_o degree_n in_o school_n do_v profess_v that_o they_o most_o firm_o admit_v and_o embrace_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a observance_n and_o constitution_n apostolicas_fw-la &_o ecclesiasticas_fw-la traditiones_fw-la reliquasque_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la obseruationes_fw-la &_o constitutiones_fw-la firmissimè_fw-la admitto_fw-la say_v every_o one_o of_o they_o bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 1._o beginning_n to_o speak_v of_o tradition_n hitherto_o say_v he_o we_o have_v dispute_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n now_o we_o will_v begin_v to_o speak_v brief_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v account_v tradition_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o holy_a scripture_n aliud_fw-la hodie_fw-la religionis_fw-la christianae_n fundamentum_fw-la say_v stapleton_n habemus_fw-la non_fw-la quidem_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la aliud_fw-la sed_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la literis_fw-la euangelicis_fw-la doctrine_n &_o apostolicis_fw-la aliud_fw-la that_o be_v we_o have_v now_o another_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n not_o diverse_a from_o christ_n but_o diverse_a from_o the_o evangelicall_a and_o apostolical_a scripture_n so_o either_o he_o exclude_v scripture_n from_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n or_o else_o make_v unwritten_a tradition_n equal_a unto_o they_o afterwards_o in_o his_o analysis_n prefix_v before_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n deliver_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n he_o vouchsafe_v the_o scripture_n no_o place_n among_o they_o but_o first_o if_o by_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n they_o understand_v all_o the_o book_n contain_v in_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n then_o they_o admit_v the_o three_o and_o four_o book_n of_o esdras_n and_o all_o addition_n to_o the_o original_a text_n to_o be_v canoniall_a scripture_n which_o contradict_v their_o own_o decree_n concern_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n second_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o make_v unwritten_a tradition_n equal_a with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o these_o be_v certain_o know_v to_o proceed_v from_o god_n but_o of_o unwritten_a tradition_n the_o adversary_n can_v bring_v no_o proof_n but_o from_o man_n now_o who_o be_v so_o presumptuous_a as_o to_o match_v the_o testimony_n of_o man_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n augustine_n in_o his_o 48._o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n speak_v of_o the_o father_n write_n say_v they_o be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o in_o his_o eight_o epistle_n which_o be_v to_o hierome_n he_o say_v that_o unto_o the_o scripture_n alone_o this_o prerogative_n be_v to_o be_v give_v that_o none_o of_o they_o contain_v any_o error_n all_o other_o author_n he_o will_v have_v censure_v and_o examine_v by_o they_o be_v not_o free_a from_o error_n the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v always_o consonant_a and_o agreeable_a to_o themselves_o but_o tradition_n do_v not_o only_o contradict_v one_o another_o but_o also_o be_v repugnant_a to_o holy_a scripture_n polycrates_n as_o eusebius_n lib._n 5._o eccles._n hist._n c._n 23._o report_v maintain_v the_o observance_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n victor_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n think_v contrary_a some_o maintain_v the_o fast_a upon_o the_o sabbath_n other_o deny_v it_o and_o both_o hold_v by_o tradition_n sive_fw-la hodiè_fw-la christus_fw-la natus_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n whether_o christ_n be_v bear_v or_o baptize_v as_o this_o day_n say_v hicrome_n serm_n de_fw-fr nat_n to_o 3._o there_o be_v a_o diverse_a opinion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o tradition_n there_o be_v diverse_a judgement_n the_o romanist_n do_v find_v their_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o their_o mass_n
solis_fw-la do_v 9_o be_v not_o the_o papist_n then_o most_o miserable_a that_o build_v their_o faith_n upon_o the_o pope_n decretal_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n to_o father_n one_o to_o another_o and_o oftentimes_o void_a of_o truth_n wit_n learning_n religion_n or_o honesty_n the_o last_o foundation_n of_o romish_a faith_n be_v the_o preach_n of_o masspriest_n and_o friar_n quomodo_fw-la christus_fw-la eiusque_fw-la doctrina_fw-la say_v stapleton_n christianae_n religionis_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la est_fw-la sic_fw-la alij_fw-la nunc_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la missi_fw-la eorúmue_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praedicatio_fw-la determinatio_fw-la doctrine_n fundamenti_fw-la apud_fw-la i_o vim_o &_o locum_fw-la habebunt_fw-la as_o christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n so_o other_o now_o send_v of_o christ_n and_o their_o doctrine_n preach_v and_o determination_n shall_v in_o my_o opinion_n have_v the_o force_n and_o place_n of_o a_o foundation_n say_v he_o and_o afterward_o he_o declare_v that_o those_o who_o the_o pope_n send_v be_v send_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o man_n which_o he_o mean_v but_o if_o this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o their_o religion_n then_o be_v the_o same_o build_v upon_o old_a wife_n fable_n forge_a tradition_n lie_v legend_n philosophical_a subtlety_n scholastical_a dispute_n popish_a decretal_n humane_a invention_n and_o such_o like_a principle_n for_o of_o they_o consist_v the_o great_a part_n of_o these_o fellow_n sermon_n as_o both_o experience_n &_o diverse_a friar_n idle_a homily_n which_o every_o man_n may_v see_v do_v plain_o testify_v furthermore_o if_o these_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n then_o be_v the_o same_o build_v upon_o man_n and_o not_o upon_o god_n upon_o humane_a device_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n upon_o sand_n and_o not_o upon_o a_o rock_n such_o also_o as_o these_o foundation_n be_v such_o be_v the_o building_n that_o be_v weak_a false_a and_o erroneous_a such_o be_v the_o romish_a religion_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n treason_n murder_n empoysonment_n lie_n gloze_a flattery_n and_o all_o mean_n possible_a will_v thrust_v upon_o we_o and_o such_o be_v the_o conclusion_n that_o be_v build_v on_o these_o foundation_n final_o see_v no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o build_v his_o faith_n upon_o man_n upon_o unwritten_a tradition_n upon_o uncertain_a ground_n and_o lie_a report_n let_v the_o papist_n consider_v with_o themselves_o in_o what_o miserable_a state_n they_o stand_v and_o return_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n in_o time_n lest_o like_o the_o foolish_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n they_o build_v their_o house_n on_o sand_n and_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o fall_n thereof_o 7._o chap._n four_o of_o diverse_a other_o blasphemous_a ridiculous_a and_o absurd_a point_n of_o popish_a religion_n true_a religion_n be_v most_o true_a venerable_a and_o respective_a of_o god_n true_a service_n if_o then_o popish_a religion_n contain_v any_o untrue_a or_o ridiculous_a vain_a and_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n then_o be_v it_o not_o true_a or_o apostolical_a or_o christian_a nor_o can_v it_o stand_v with_o christian_a religion_n see_v no_o man_n can_v serve_v god_n and_o baal_n nor_o dagon_n can_v stand_v before_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n but_o notorious_a it_o be_v that_o popish_a religion_n centain_v many_o blasphemous_a ridiculous_a and_o absurd_a point_n first_o concern_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n they_o teach_v false_o and_o blasphemous_o and_o say_v that_o a_o mouse_n or_o dog_n or_o hog_n may_v eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n nay_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o affirm_v that_o his_o most_o holy_a body_n may_v be_v cast_v out_o upon_o a_o dunghill_n or_o into_o any_o unclean_a place_n prima_fw-la opinio_fw-la say_v alexander_n hales_n part_n 4._o sum_n q._n 53._o m._n 2._o quae_fw-la dicit_fw-la quod_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la defertur_fw-la quocunque_fw-la species_n deferunt_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o ventrem_fw-la canis_fw-la vel_fw-la suis_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o alia_fw-la lo_n ca_fw-mi immunda_fw-la videtur_fw-la vera_fw-la and_o again_o p._n 4._o sum_n q._n 45._o m._n 1._o si_fw-la canis_fw-la aut_fw-la porcus_fw-la deglutiat_fw-la hostiam_fw-la consecratam_fw-la non_fw-la video_fw-la quare_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la simul_fw-la traijceretur_fw-la in_o ventrem_fw-la canis_fw-la vel_fw-la porci_fw-la be_v a_o dog_n or_o hog_n shall_v swallow_v a_o consecrate_v hoff_z sai_z he_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o withal_o pass_v into_o the_o belly_n of_o a_o dog_n or_o hog_n thomas_n aquinas_n likewise_o although_o make_v a_o saint_n by_o the_o pope_n yet_o shame_v not_o to_o hold_v this_o profane_a and_o unholy_a opinion_n part_n 3._o q._n 80._o art_n 3._o and_o in_o his_o comment_n in_o 4._o scent_n do_v 9_o q._n 2._o the_o same_o be_v also_o stiff_o maintain_v by_o brulifer_n in_o 4._o scent_n do_v 13._o quest_n 5._o and_o this_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o schoolman_n that_o the_o priest_n be_v able_a to_o make_v his_o creator_n they_o make_v no_o question_n bonner_n count_v this_o among_o the_o prerogative_n of_o priesthood_n in_o his_o absurd_a speech_n which_o he_o make_v in_o the_o con_fw-la stian_a faith_n by_o the_o very_a confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n the_o same_o also_o may_v otherwise_o be_v prove_v if_o they_o shall_v not_o confess_v so_o much_o for_o how_o be_v christ_n ascend_v if_o his_o body_n be_v hang_v over_o every_o altar_n how_o be_v it_o credible_a that_o he_o shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n to_o judge_v quick_a and_o dead_a if_o he_o be_v lurk_v in_o every_o consecrate_v host_n how_o be_v he_o conceive_v and_o bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o suffer_v death_n on_o the_o cross_n if_o he_o have_v a_o body_n of_o such_o a_o simple_a nature_n that_o it_o be_v like_o light_n in_o glass_n and_o may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o without_o fill_v any_o final_o it_o imply_v a_o notorious_a contradiction_n for_o chrifts_n body_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n visible_a and_o here_o invisible_a to_o be_v there_o palpable_a and_o here_o impalpable_a to_o be_v continue_v and_o not_o continue_v eat_v here_o and_o not_o eat_v in_o heaven_n here_o without_o fill_v of_o a_o place_n there_o fill_v a_o place_n here_o in_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o there_o not_o absurd_o also_o do_v the_o papist_n talk_v of_o christ_n his_o most_o holy_a sacrifice_n christ_n say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n c._n 9_o be_v once_o offer_v that_o he_o may_v take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o and_o hebr._n 10._o christ_n have_v offer_v one_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n do_v perpetual_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o again_o with_o one_o oblation_n he_o have_v for_o ever_o sanctify_v those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v but_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o our_o saviour_n offer_v himself_o twice_o once_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o the_o second_o time_n upon_o the_o cross_n they_o teach_v also_o that_o the_o priest_n in_o every_o mass_n 1._o do_v offer_v up_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o chrift_n real_o for_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a the_o which_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n but_o derogate_v much_o from_o the_o perfection_n and_o unity_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n for_o how_o be_v christ_n sacrifice_n perfect_a if_o the_o same_o be_v so_o often_o reiterated_a how_o be_v christ_n his_o sacrifice_n one_o and_o the_o same_o if_o every_o pelt_a priest_n do_v offer_v up_o this_o sacrifice_n the_o same_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christian_n be_v spiritual_a and_o no_o where_o say_v that_o they_o offer_v up_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n real_o justin_n in_o dial_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v that_o prayer_n and_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a acceptable_a sacrifice_n of_o christian_n with_o he_o concur_v tertullian_n lib._n 3._o contra_fw-la marcionem_fw-la this_o visible_a sacrifice_n say_v augustine_n lib._n 10._o the_o civet_n dei_fw-la ca._n 5._o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v the_o same_o be_v a_o holy_a sign_n of_o it_o likewise_o chrysostome_n hom_n 17._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la heb._n say_v that_o our_o oblation_n be_v but_o a_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n his_o death_n and_o a_o figure_n of_o that_o oblation_n which_o christ_n make_v final_o it_o be_v most_o blasphemous_a for_o in_o the_o mass_n the_o priest_n take_v on_o he_o to_o be_v a_o mediator_n for_o chrift_n and_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v look_v on_o christ_n with_o a_o propitious_a and_o serene_a countenance_n &_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n as_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o accept_v the_o offering_n of_o abel_n abraham_n and_o melchisedech_n the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o christ_n only_o be_v a_o priest_n
may_v we_o not_o say_v the_o same_o to_o papist_n they_o may_v percase_o deny_v the_o case_n to_o be_v like_a but_o in_o my_o challenge_n i_o have_v by_o many_o argument_n prove_v they_o to_o be_v gross_a idolater_n &_o have_v clear_o show_v that_o they_o have_v no_o better_a excuse_n for_o their_o worship_n of_o image_n than_o the_o idolatrous_a gentile_n have_v for_o their_o worship_n of_o idol_n be_v they_o not_o then_o likewise_o blind_a and_o miserable_a think_v to_o thrust_v other_o out_o of_o their_o society_n which_o they_o call_v the_o church_n they_o have_v flat_o exclude_v themselves_o from_o the_o society_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o if_o their_o church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o participate_v the_o same_o sacrament_n under_o the_o rule_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o bellarmine_n say_v lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccl._n milit_fw-la cap._n 2._o then_o be_v they_o not_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o that_o church_n be_v long_o before_o either_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n beside_o that_o false_a it_o be_v that_o either_o the_o apostle_n or_o whole_a apostolic_a church_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o john_n the_o evangelist_n that_o live_v long_o after_o peter_n be_v subject_a to_o linus_n cletus_n or_o clement_n in_o who_o time_n he_o live_v final_o false_a it_o be_v that_o god_n appoint_v the_o church_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v nothing_o thereof_o in_o scripture_n the_o father_n show_n that_o the_o chief_a authority_n in_o external_a matter_n be_v in_o general_a counsel_n and_o emperor_n and_o bellarmine_n idle_a dispute_n concern_v his_o pope_n be_v long_o since_o overthrow_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n it_o appear_v also_o for_o that_o they_o hear_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n but_o sollow_v a_o stranger_n for_o that_o they_o have_v receive_v diverse_a heresy_n and_o devise_v new_a sacrament_n relinquish_a christ_n his_o institution_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o that_o they_o have_v other_o foundation_n of_o their_o religion_n than_o be_v lay_v by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n for_o that_o they_o persecute_v true_a christian_n murder_v they_o and_o massacre_v they_o and_o by_o all_o mean_n persecute_v they_o and_o for_o diverse_a other_o reason_n lay_v down_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o bellarmine_n book_n de_n eccles._n militante_fw-la if_o then_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v save_v without_o the_o church_n in_o what_o case_n be_v they_o that_o run_v after_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v that_o antichrist_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2._o thess._n 2._o be_v run_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o whither_o be_v they_o run_v forsooth_o into_o the_o confusion_n of_o babylon_n where_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n mass_n priest_n &_o friar_n make_v merchandise_n of_o man_n soul_n bellarmine_n say_v that_o neither_o faith_n hope_n nor_o charity_n nor_o other_o 2._o internal_a virtue_n be_v require_v that_o a_o man_n absolute_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o a_o external_a profession_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o then_o will_v not_o leave_v that_o society_n which_o for_o aught_o that_o we_o know_v may_v be_v a_o pack_n of_o turk_n and_o infidel_n without_o all_o virtue_n religion_n and_o honesty_n especial_o if_o they_o profess_v the_o romish_a faith_n external_o further_o as_o they_o have_v exclude_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n so_o they_o have_v put_v themselves_o under_o the_o subjection_n of_o antichrist_n that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o malignant_a church_n and_o to_o his_o cardinal_n masspriest_n and_o friar_n which_o rabblement_n be_v fit_o resemble_v to_o the_o master_n cook_n of_o hell_n his_o scalder_n the_o blacke-guard_n and_o all_o the_o scullery_n of_o satan_n whatsoever_o the_o pope_n decree_v that_o they_o receive_v agatho_n the_o pope_n have_v tell_v they_o in_o good_a earnest_n that_o all_o sanction_n 19_o of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o if_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o divine_a voice_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o pope_n never_o so_o unlearned_a or_o foolish_a or_o perverse_a yet_o if_o he_o say_v the_o word_n sit_v on_o his_o close_a chair_n it_o must_v stand_v his_o voice_n they_o take_v to_o be_v infallible_a his_o sentence_n be_v honour_v like_o a_o divine_a oracle_n likewise_o his_o cardinal_n mass_n priest_n and_o friar_n albeit_o they_o be_v the_o false_a prophet_n speak_v of_o by_o s._n peter_n 2._o pet._n 2._o and_o diverse_o detect_v by_o s._n john_n in_o his_o revelation_n to_o be_v limb_n of_o antichrist_n yet_o be_v they_o follow_v these_o lead_n and_o their_o simple_a hearer_n follow_v they_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n their_o teacher_n bring_v to_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n as_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n say_v and_o they_o can_v escape_v beléeve_v their_o damnable_a heresy_n and_o run_v after_o they_o in_o their_o wicked_a way_n pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la that_o hellhound_n that_o first_o bark_v against_o queen_n elizabeth_n our_o late_a sovereign_n eliz._n say_v that_o christ_n commit_v his_o church_n to_o peter_n alone_o uni_fw-la soli_fw-la but_o that_o be_v most_o false_a the_o apostle_n ephes._n 4._o say_v he_o give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n likewise_o mat._n 28._o he_o say_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n go_v and_o teach_v beside_o that_o what_o do_v the_o authority_n of_o peter_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n s._n peter_n have_v neither_o such_o ruby_n cardinal_n nor_o such_o a_o particoloured_a guard_n of_o swisser_n nor_o such_o a_o hellish_a rabble_n of_o masspriest_n and_o friar_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v contrariwise_o he_o preach_v and_o suffer_v as_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o other_o say_v that_o masspriest_n and_o friar_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n but_o we_o find_v they_o to_o be_v the_o locust_n that_o as_o s._n john_n foretell_v come_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n mention_v apocalypse_n 9_o if_o they_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n than_o will_v they_o teach_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n decretal_n scholastical_a invention_n philosophical_a subtlety_n and_o such_o foolery_n again_o they_o will_v not_o lead_v their_o miserable_a disciple_n from_o christ_n to_o antichrist_n they_o have_v also_o decline_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n our_o saviour_n only_o institute_v two_o that_o proper_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n bear_v witness_v the_o father_n also_o confirm_v unto_o we_o two_o only_a sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n cyprian_a lib._n 2._o epist._n 1._o tunc_fw-la demum_fw-la planè_fw-la sanctificari_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la silij_fw-la dei_fw-la possunt_fw-la si_fw-la utroque_fw-la sacramento_n nascantur_fw-la then_o may_v they_o be_v sanctify_v and_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n say_v he_o if_o they_o be_v regenerate_v by_o both_o the_o sacrament_n augustine_n de_fw-fr symb_n ad_fw-la catechum_fw-la say_v haecsunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gemina_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la these_o be_v the_o two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v any_o father_n name_v more_o sacrament_n than_o two_o where_o he_o speak_v proper_o as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o justines_n second_o apology_n of_o tertullian_n lib._n 1._o &_o 4._o contr_n martion_n of_o clement_n recognit_v lib._n 1._o of_o ambrose_n lib._n the_o sacrament_n of_o cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o catechisticall_a sermon_n of_o augustine_n lib._n 3._o the_o doctr_n christ._n cap._n 9_o of_o gregory_n cap._n multi_fw-la secularium_fw-la 1._o q._n 1._o who_o although_o he_o name_v baptism_n chrism_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n yet_o chrism_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o addition_n to_o baptism_n of_o paschasius_fw-la and_o other_o sunt_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la christi_fw-la say_v paschasius_fw-la christi_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la baptismus_fw-la corpus_fw-la quoque_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v baptism_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o so_o manifest_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v that_o bessarion_n write_v upon_o the_o sacrament_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n only_o deliver_v in_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o papist_n have_v add_v other_o five_o sacrament_n unto_o these_o two_o give_v like_o virtue_n unto_o confirmation_n marriage_n order_n penance_n and_o extreme_a unction_n as_o unto_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o teach_v that_o sacrament_n contain_v grace_n and_o justify_v the_o receiver_n so_o that_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v they_o as_o well_o he_o be_v justify_v
that_o be_v confirm_v marry_a order_v or_o anoint_v as_o he_o that_o be_v baptize_v or_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n where_o christ_n distribute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o give_v both_o the_o kind_n to_o all_o communicant_n they_o seldom_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n and_o take_v the_o cup_n from_o all_o but_o the_o priest_n in_o confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n they_o use_v other_o sign_n and_o form_n then_o ever_o christ_n ordain_v they_o teach_v that_o christian_n be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v for_o their_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o peep_v by_o indulgence_n have_v power_n to_o remit_v satisfaction_n and_o to_o do_v away_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o sin_n be_v they_o not_o than_o most_o miserable_a that_o have_v corrupt_v the_o sacrament_n and_o seal_n of_o god_n eternal_a testament_n and_o as_o it_o be_v break_v the_o covenant_n betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o and_o despise_v the_o pledge_n of_o his_o love_n of_o christian_a faith_n they_o think_v so_o base_o that_o they_o make_v it_o nothing_o but_o a_o bare_a assent_n to_o god_n word_n as_o well_o in_o fear_v the_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n as_o beléeve_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o teach_v that_o not_o only_o reprobate_a man_n but_o also_o the_o devil_n also_o may_v have_v true_a faith_n bellarmine_n lib._n the_o iustif_a 1._o c._n 15._o speak_v of_o the_o say_v of_o wicked_a man_n and_o devil_n say_v that_o both_o be_v true_a and_o right_a and_o catholic_a faith_n and_o comparable_a to_o s._n peter_n faith_n concern_v the_o object_n grace_n that_o make_v we_o acceptable_a to_o god_n say_v bellarmine_n can_v real_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o habit_n of_o charity_n but_o 6._o if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o may_v christian_n be_v save_v by_o their_o work_n without_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n work_v with_o they_o which_o be_v mere_a pelagianisme_n for_o if_o charity_n as_o it_o be_v in_o we_o habitual_o make_v we_o belove_v than_o it_o be_v our_o love_n towards_o god_n and_o not_o god_n grace_n or_o love_n towards_o we_o or_o his_o grace_n help_v we_o and_o remit_v our_o sin_n through_o christ_n that_o save_v we_o proper_o they_o deny_v that_o a_o man_n be_v certain_o to_o persuade_v himself_o of_o his_o own_o salvation_n or_o to_o believe_v the_o same_o and_o all_o their_o confidence_n they_o put_v in_o their_o own_o work_n and_o merit_n hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o pilgrimage_n indulgence_n eat_v of_o fumadae_n creep_v to_o the_o cross_n kiss_v of_o the_o pope_n toe_n pray_v to_o saint_n to_o stock_n to_o stone_n give_v of_o money_n to_o lazy_a monk_n and_o friar_n and_o such_o like_a humane_a device_n be_v they_o not_o than_o most_o wretched_a that_o neither_o understand_v what_o be_v grace_n nor_o what_o be_v faith_n nor_o what_o be_v charity_n nor_o what_o belong_v to_o good_a work_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o say_v our_o saviour_n mark_v 16_o shall_v be_v damn_v the_o apostle_n also_o show_v that_o none_o be_v justify_v but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ._n nay_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n save_v we_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n ibidem_fw-la which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n by_o the_o wash_n of_o the_o new_a birth_n and_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o eat_v holy_a bread_n they_o hope_v to_o attain_v health_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o ronish_a missal_n they_o doubt_v not_o also_o but_o that_o their_o eat_n of_o their_o paschal_n lamb_n tend_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n by_o holy_a water_n they_o teach_v that_o not_o only_a devil_n be_v drive_v away_o but_o also_o venial_a sin_n remit_v final_o there_o remain_v but_o few_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o the_o papist_n with_o their_o leven_n partly_o of_o judaical_a and_o heathenish_a superstition_n and_o partly_o of_o heretical_a doctrine_n have_v not_o corrupt_v what_o then_o rest_v but_o that_o we_o deplore_v their_o blindness_n which_o admit_v such_o erroneous_a absurd_a and_o blasphemous_a point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o wilful_o resist_v those_o that_o offer_v unto_o they_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o god_n word_n chap._n v._o the_o miserable_a state_n of_o papist_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v prove_v further_o for_o that_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o those_o blessing_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v by_o the_o abrogation_n of_o popish_a heresy_n and_o superstition_n i_o do_v not_o think_v but_o that_o our_o adversary_n albeit_o they_o differ_v from_o we_o in_o other_o point_n yet_o in_o this_o will_v join_v with_o we_o and_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a thing_n to_o wander_v without_o any_o certainty_n in_o religion_n parson_n in_o the_o first_o encounter_n of_o his_o wardword_n do_v in_o effect_n say_v so_o much_o and_o albeit_o they_o shall_v deny_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n very_o evident_a for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 2._o those_o that_o sin_n without_o the_o law_n shall_v perish_v also_o without_o the_o law_n if_o they_o know_v the_o law_n and_o do_v it_o not_o the_o law_n will_v accuse_v they_o and_o condemn_v they_o if_o they_o regard_v not_o to_o know_v the_o law_n yet_o shall_v god_n justice_n lie_v hold_v upon_o they_o for_o offend_v the_o law_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v know_v the_o apostle_n ephes._n 2._o when_o he_o will_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o miserable_a estate_n before_o their_o conversion_n say_v they_o live_v without_o christ_n and_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n as_o if_o nothing_o can_v be_v devise_v more_o damnable_a then_o to_o live_v with_o out_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o gentile_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v ephes._n 4._o walk_v in_o the_o vanity_n of_o their_o mind_n have_v their_o understanding_n darken_v and_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n through_o the_o ignorance_n that_o be_v in_o they_o because_o of_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o argue_v the_o miserable_a state_n of_o christian_n that_o live_v like_o gentile_n without_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n jesus_n god_n have_v also_o appoint_v a_o certain_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n one_o end_n be_v that_o henceforth_o we_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o child_n waver_v and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n but_o the_o papist_n for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o be_v show_v live_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v carry_v about_o with_o the_o blast_n of_o every_o blunder_a pope_n &_o waver_v as_o the_o wind_n of_o his_o bluster_a bull_n and_o decretal_n do_v carry_v they_o upon_o the_o scripture_n they_o ground_n not_o themselves_o but_o must_v take_v both_o such_o scripture_n and_o such_o doctrine_n as_o he_o shall_v deliver_v they_o second_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a thing_n to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n for_o as_o out_o of_o the_o ark_n of_o no_o all_o perish_a in_o the_o old_a world_n so_o all_o that_o be_v without_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v undoubted_o perish_v those_o sheep_n that_o be_v without_o christ_n his_o fold_n be_v expose_v to_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o wolf_n and_o without_o hope_n of_o salvation_n how_o then_o can_v the_o papist_n look_v for_o salvation_n that_o in_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n further_o by_o many_o property_n they_o show_v themselves_o to_o have_v no_o affinity_n with_o the_o true_a church_n as_o before_o i_o have_v declare_v three_o without_o true_a faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n the_o same_o be_v the_o door_n by_o which_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o we_o have_v show_v that_o in_o many_o point_v the_o papist_n have_v decline_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n what_o hope_v then_o can_v they_o have_v either_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n or_o to_o please_v god_n how_o happen_v it_o they_o see_v not_o their_o wretched_a state_n absque_fw-la notitia_fw-la svi_fw-la creatoris_fw-la omnis_fw-la homo_fw-la pecus_fw-la est_fw-la without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n a_o man_n be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o beast_n say_v hierome_n epist_n 3._o four_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n betwixt_o god_n and_o us._n our_o saviour_n take_v the_o cup_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n call_v it_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n if_o then_o the_o papist_n have_v violate_v christ_n his_o institution_n in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o ministration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o by_o diverse_a argument_n we_o have_v declare_v then_o have_v they_o declare_v themselves_o unworthy_a
the_o seven_o tome_n of_o caesar_n baronius_n his_o annal_n &_o other_o and_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o justinian_n do_v not_o begin_v his_o empire_n before_o the_o second_o year_n of_o felix_n that_o be_v successor_n to_o john_n the_o first_o beside_o this_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o last_o challenge_n that_o the_o law_n inter_fw-la claras_fw-la cod._n de_fw-fr sum_n trin_n &_o fid_fw-we cath_z be_v scarce_o authentical_a but_o be_v it_o so_o yet_o do_v it_o rather_o overthrow_v the_o pope_n authority_n than_o otherwise_o for_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v there_o derive_v from_o counsel_n &_o emperor_n and_o not_o from_o god_n word_n and_o john_n call_v himself_o episcopum_fw-la vrbis_fw-la romae_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o universal_a bishop_n fol._n 18._o for_o justinianus_n he_o name_v justinus_n and_o for_o eutyches_n euthyches_n and_o for_o circumcellion_n circumcillians_n but_o these_o be_v small_a fault_n in_o comparison_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v fol._n 19_o b._n where_o for_o constantine_n copronymus_n he_o write_v constantine_n capronius_n mindful_a as_o it_o shall_v seem_v of_o his_o own_o capricious_a trick_n who_o as_o his_o friend_n say_v be_v caper_n inter_fw-la capras_fw-la i_o speak_v to_o he_o that_o know_v the_o manner_n of_o italian_n for_o this_o fault_n therefore_o in_o stead_n of_o n._n d._n let_v he_o have_v a_o mask_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o cover_v his_o swine_n snout_n for_o very_a shame_n and_o for_o parsonius_n let_v he_o be_v call_v capronius_n fol._n 32._o for_o sweet_a sing_a siren_n he_o write_v sweet_a sing_n syrienes_n which_o make_v we_o much_o suspect_n that_o some_o sweet_a sing_a syrian_a or_o italian_a woman_n or_o boy_n have_v so_o bereave_v he_o of_o his_o sense_n as_o he_o be_v able_a to_o name_v nothing_o right_a if_o he_o proceed_v on_o this_o fashion_n it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v fear_v that_o he_o will_v forget_v his_o own_o name_n if_o we_o do_v not_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o it_o fol._n 30._o where_o the_o canonist_n be_v charge_v with_o flattery_n for_o say_v our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n he_o say_v the_o word_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v afterwards_o for_o very_a compassion_n he_o say_v he_o will_v add_v a_o conjecture_n how_o sir_n francis_n may_v be_v deceive_v and_o that_o be_v in_o suppose_v that_o d._n d._n noft_a papa_n do_v signify_v dominus_fw-la deus_fw-la and_o like_v as_o if_o a_o man_n read_v this_o superscription_n to_o the_o right_n honourable_a our_o good_a lord_n the_o lord_n admiral_n shall_v suppose_v the_o second_o l._n to_o signify_v lady_n but_o in_o talk_v of_o d._n d_o he_o show_v himself_o a_o double_a dolt_n and_o a_o lewd_a lozel_n sport_v himself_o with_o his_o own_o foolish_a babble_n for_o the_o place_n allege_v be_v extant_a in_o the_o gloss_n in_o c._n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la nonnullos_fw-la extr_n joan._n 22._o de_fw-fr verb._n signif_n the_o word_n be_v these_o credere_fw-la dominum_fw-la deum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la papam_fw-la conditorem_fw-la dictae_fw-la decretalis_fw-la &_o istius_fw-la sic_fw-la non_fw-la potuisse_fw-la statuere_fw-la haereticum_fw-la censetur_fw-la that_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n the_o maker_n of_o the_o say_v decretal_a and_o this_o also_o can_v not_o so_o appoint_v it_o be_v account_v heretical_a i_o doubt_v not_o therefore_o but_o robert_n parson_n although_o a_o thick_a skin_a fellow_n when_o he_o read_v this_o will_v blush_v and_o his_o consort_n take_v compassion_n of_o his_o ignorance_n less_o certes_o they_o can_v do_v then_o call_v he_o node_n fol._n 35._o he_o disjoin_v as_o he_o say_v the_o harm_n ensue_v by_o change_n of_o religion_n from_o her_o majesty_n government_n as_o if_o her_o majesty_n government_n can_v be_v consider_v without_o religion_n or_o as_o if_o this_o traitor_n do_v not_o calumniate_v her_o government_n that_o reprove_v all_o her_o action_n do_v for_o religion_n fol._n 45._o he_o devide_v paulus_n alciatus_fw-la into_o two_o which_o error_n he_o may_v have_v correct_v by_o bellarmine_n in_o prafat_n in_o 2._o controver_n fol._n 47._o he_o name_v marspurge_n for_o marpurge_n fol._n 71._o he_o say_v it_o be_v contrary_a to_o sophistry_n he_o will_v say_v logic_n for_o extreme_n to_o be_v in_o one_o subject_n but_o this_o show_v that_o parson_n head_n be_v never_o any_o subject_n for_o logic_n for_o else_o he_o may_v know_v that_o extreme_n that_o be_v not_o immediate_a may_v be_v in_o one_o as_o for_o example_n avarice_n in_o scrape_v and_o prodigality_n in_o give_v presumption_n and_o hypocrisy_n albeit_o proper_o these_o be_v not_o extreme_n in_o respect_n one_o of_o another_o but_o of_o their_o mean_a virtue_n fol._n 90._o b._n allege_v cyrill_n he_o cit_v his_o catechism_n and_o quote_v he_o thus_o ciril_n hierosol_n catechis_n 4._o &_o 5._o mistach_n and_o so_o file_v his_o moustache_n he_o think_v he_o have_v speak_v spruce_o but_o his_o unlearned_a quotation_n show_v that_o he_o have_v scarce_o ever_o see_v that_o father_n who_o write_v not_o catechism_n but_o catechese_n and_o not_o mistachical_a but_o mystagogical_a the_o writing_n of_o ci_o in_o ciril_n with_o a_o i_o be_v but_o a_o light_a fault_n of_o a_o lout_n that_o understand_v no_o greek_a for_o which_o for_o i_o cardinals_z hat_z let_v he_o have_v a_o mitre_n with_o two_o coxcomb_n fol._n 104._o b._n he_o say_v that_o valentinian_n mention_v in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o law_n cunctos_fw-la populos_fw-la be_v son_n to_o gratian._n a_o most_o lamentable_a error_n for_o history_n do_v all_o testify_v that_o gratian_n and_o valentinian_n the_o young_a be_v son_n to_o valentinian_n the_o elder_a and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o let_v he_o look_v caesar_n baronius_n tom_n 4._o in_o the_o several_a entrance_n of_o gratian_n and_o valentinian_n the_o young_a what_o a_o lewd_a fellow_n than_o be_v this_o who_o not_o content_a to_o beget_v nevewe_v on_o his_o own_o sister_n do_v now_o make_v the_o brother_n to_o beget_v his_o brother_n fol._n 110._o a._n he_o say_v when_o a_o man_n be_v choose_v pope_n his_o rudeness_n be_v turn_v into_o wisdom_n his_o feebleness_n into_o fortitude_n his_o infirmity_n into_o virtue_n and_o yet_o experience_n teach_v we_o that_o ordinary_o they_o be_v as_o ignorant_a as_o lewd_a unlearned_a and_o filthy_a as_o they_o be_v before_o clement_n the_o eight_o for_o all_o his_o fortitude_n can_v scarce_o go_v without_o help_n and_o very_o strange_a it_o seem_v to_o we_o here_o that_o the_o pope_n chair_n shall_v serve_v to_o cure_v man_n of_o all_o ignorance_n infirmity_n and_o disease_n and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o robert_n parson_n may_v sit_v some_o few_o hour_n in_o the_o pope_n chair_n that_o he_o may_v be_v cure_v of_o his_o rudeness_n in_o rail_v his_o ignorance_n in_o writing_n and_o all_o other_o his_o scab_n and_o infirmity_n i_o for_o my_o part_n beleeu_n rather_o that_o the_o rudeness_n of_o this_o rudent_fw-la and_o mad_a jebusite_n will_v never_o be_v cure_v although_o he_o be_v reboyl_v like_o peleus_n in_o the_o leaf_n next_o go_v before_o for_o acephali_a he_o write_v a_o chevali_fw-la show_v himself_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o greek_a and_o his_o head_n to_o be_v as_o gross_a as_o any_o capel_n head_n rather_o than_o our_o church_n to_o be_v without_o head_n who_o hold_v christ_n for_o the_o sole_a head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o prove_v that_o catholic_a man_n can_v receive_v their_o faith_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v a_o collection_n and_o communion_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n i_o think_v that_o i_o need_v not_o to_o use_v many_o argument_n the_o same_o be_v a_o matter_n so_o plain_a and_o evident_a for_o than_o shall_v the_o receiver_n be_v no_o catholic_n nor_o shall_v the_o catholic_a church_n consist_v of_o particular_a man_n and_o final_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v be_v agent_n to_o deliver_v and_o all_o member_n to_o receive_v and_o no_o distinction_n shall_v be_v between_o the_o giver_n and_o receiver_n but_o i_o use_v only_o one_o argument_n draw_v from_o a_o common_a principle_n of_o schoolman_n viz._n that_o action_n be_v act_v of_o singular_a person_n and_o not_o of_o the_o body_n collective_a suppose_v that_o i_o have_v have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o schoolman_n or_o a_o man_n at_o the_o least_o that_o understand_v logic_n but_o now_o i_o see_v i_o be_o front_v with_o a_o ass_n and_o a_o fellow_n devoid_a of_o logic_n and_o reason_n for_o otherwise_o he_o will_v not_o have_v talk_v so_o idle_o of_o suppositum_fw-la and_o singular_a and_o universale_fw-la nor_o derive_v his_o logic_n from_o tolet_n nor_o deny_v my_o argument_n for_o if_o in_o god_n the_o whole_a essence_n do_v suffer_v and_o not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o if_o the_o whole_a essence_n shall_v
be_v bear_v and_o not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o parson_n must_v grant_v if_o he_o will_v have_v action_n to_o proceed_v à_fw-fr toto_fw-la collectivo_fw-la then_o do_v he_o fall_v flat_o into_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o patripassian_o &_o overthrow_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n again_o all_o his_o discourse_n about_o term_n collective_a and_o universal_a make_v against_o himself_o for_o if_o as_o aristotle_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o if_o all_o action_n and_o generation_n be_v individuis_fw-la and_o singular_a person_n and_o not_o in_o thing_n universal_a or_o body_n of_o commonwealth_n then_o i_o say_v true_a and_o he_o false_a he_o may_v also_o receive_v back_o his_o boyery_n and_o foolery_n and_o keep_v they_o to_o himself_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v not_o proper_o deliver_v the_o faith_n they_o themselves_o also_o after_o a_o sort_n confess_v for_o when_o they_o bring_v proof_n of_o their_o faith_n they_o go_v to_o this_o pope_n and_o that_o pope_n this_o man_n and_o that_o man_n and_o not_o to_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o be_v also_o prove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o a_o body_n politic_a for_o if_o particular_a man_n do_v all_o action_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o state_n and_o not_o all_o the_o commonwealth_n how_o can_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v say_v proper_o to_o decree_n to_o proclaim_v to_o give_v out_o must_v all_o meet_v &_o like_o a_o chorus_n speak_v or_o act_v a_o part_n o_o mere_a dizardry_n o_o pitiful_a ignorance_n and_o that_o to_o be_v correct_v with_o many_o stripe_n nay_o himself_n in_o the_o end_n be_v drive_v to_o say_v fol._n 109._o that_o when_o papist_n say_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n their_o meaning_n be_v that_o albeit_o particular_a priest_n etc._n etc._n deliver_v the_o same_o yet_o for_o that_o they_o do_v it_o not_o as_o of_o themselves_o but_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n deliver_v it_o so_o you_o see_v he_o come_v like_o a_o resty_a jade_n to_o the_o montoier_n and_o say_v as_o we_o say_v in_o effect_n and_o to_o help_v himself_o belie_v his_o fellow_n for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o show_v any_o papist_n so_o sottish_a as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o universal_a catholic_a church_n deliver_v the_o say_v to_o private_a person_n in_o his_o second_o encounter_n c._n 3._o in_o write_v bede_n word_n he_o commit_v a_o gross_a solecism_n where_o he_o say_v scientiam_fw-la seruatur_fw-la &_o confitetur_fw-la he_o shall_v have_v say_v scientiam_fw-la scrutatur_fw-la &_o confitetur_fw-la but_o that_o his_o spectacle_n fail_v he_o his_o disciplc_n therefore_o may_v do_v well_o to_o keep_v up_o their_o master_n that_o have_v forget_v his_o grammar_n in_o the_o same_o encounter_n fol._n 37._o he_o do_v ridiculous_o prove_v his_o mass_n by_o the_o leviticall_a sacrifice_n of_o zachary_n mention_v luke_n 1._o and_o foolish_o argue_v that_o papist_n may_v prosit_fw-la much_o by_o hear_v mass_n albeit_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o but_o one_o great_a inconvenience_n he_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o for_o if_o the_o example_n of_o zachary_n make_v for_o the_o mass_n then_o as_o the_o people_n be_v without_o when_o zachary_n offer_v within_o so_o the_o people_n may_v be_v in_o the_o churchyard_n when_o the_o priest_n be_v at_o mass_n so_o they_o shall_v neither_o need_v to_o hear_v mass_n nor_o see_v mass_n fol._n 58._o of_o the_o second_o encounter_n the_o patch_n confess_v he_o fetch_v his_o divinity_n from_o thomas_n aquinas_n the_o warder_n say_v he_o show_v at_o large_a out_o of_o s._n thomas_n whereby_o his_o doltish_a folly_n be_v prove_v at_o large_a that_o allege_v so_o brave_a a_o author_n to_o we_o that_o for_o divinity_n be_v of_o equal_a credit_n with_o robert_n parson_n though_o far_o more_o subtle_a and_o better_a learned_a fol._n 65._o answer_v to_o a_o place_n out_o of_o paraleip_n vrspergensis_n he_o say_v he_o find_v it_o not_o but_o that_o be_v either_o his_o great_a ignorance_n or_o the_o thickness_n of_o his_o spectacle_n let_v he_o therefore_o look_v that_o book_n in_o the_o note_n upon_o the_o year_n 1518._o and_o he_o shall_v find_v these_o word_n there_o record_v sic_fw-la dicerem_fw-la in_o scholis_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la manet_fw-la in_o aeternos_fw-la diversum_fw-la sentio_fw-la fol._n 67._o for_o petilian_n and_o cresconius_n he_o name_v petilian_n &_o crescentius_n show_v himself_o well_o travel_v in_o s._n augustin_n work_n fol._n 106._o b._n ●_o encounter_n chap._n 13._o ignorant_o he_o do_v so_o interpret_v the_o word_n primo_fw-la mancipio_fw-la gehennae_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-la papa_n do_v 40._o as_o if_o boniface_n do_v call_v the_o pope_n the_o chief_a bondslave_n of_o hell_n the_o gloss_n do_v notorious_o convince_v he_o of_o ignorance_n mancipio_fw-la say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o gloss_n in_o cap._n si_fw-la papa_n do_v 40._o id_fw-la est_fw-la diabolo_fw-la qui_fw-la mancipatus_fw-la est_fw-la gehennae_fw-la but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n be_v little_o behold_v to_o parson_n that_o call_v he_o the_o chief_a bondslave_n of_o hell_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o if_o he_o take_v the_o bastardly_a irbusite_n handsome_o he_o will_v whip_v the_o knave_n like_o a_o mancipium_fw-la gehennae_fw-la or_o galley_n slave_n until_o he_o have_v recant_v his_o word_n and_o bring_v he_o out_o of_o hell_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o wretched_a papist_n may_v see_v their_o servile_a estate_n that_o follow_v oftentimes_o either_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o gloss_n say_v or_o the_o devil_n bondslave_n the_o pope_n as_o parson_n the_o pope_n slave_n of_o ignorance_n confess_v fol._n 113._o 2._o encounter_n 14._o he_o speak_v false_a latin_a say_v qui_fw-la parcè_fw-la seminit_fw-la parcè_fw-la &_o metet_fw-la put_v seminit_fw-la for_o seminat_fw-la and_o quote_v the_o 2._o corinthian_n 11._o for_o 2._o corinthian_n 9_o fol._n 114._o 2._o encounter_n chap._n 14._o he_o distinguish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o homoousion_n and_o consubstantiality_n as_o two_o several_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n whereas_o the_o learned_a out_o of_o which_o rank_n i_o blot_v parson_n know_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_a be_v nothing_o but_o consubstantial_a fol._n 115._o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o quote_v durand_n lib._n 4._o in_o scent_n do_v 2._o for_o do_v 20._o a_o little_a after_o he_o cavil_v with_o i_o for_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o absolve_v and_o pardon_v man_n that_o have_v live_v most_o filthy_o and_o abominable_o and_o say_v that_o absolution_n belong_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n and_o not_o to_o indulgence_n but_o therein_o the_o ass_n bewray_v his_o own_o gross_a ignorance_n for_o as_o some_o papist_n say_v indulgence_n be_v absolution_n other_o say_v it_o be_v absolutio_fw-la &_o solutio_fw-la as_o bellarmine_n dispute_v lib._n 1_o de_fw-fr indulg_n ca._n 5._o and_o might_n have_v teach_v the_o same_o to_o parson_n if_o he_o will_v have_v look_v on_o he_o the_o pope_n therefore_o may_v do_v well_o to_o lash_v this_o ass_n and_o to_o grant_v he_o no_o pardon_n that_o know_v not_o the_o ground_n and_o first_o principle_n of_o his_o own_o fool_n or_o as_o some_o call_v it_o school_n divinity_n nay_o he_o remember_v not_o the_o common_a form_n of_o pardon_n gregory_n the_o 13._o anno_fw-la 1578._o grant_v a_o pardon_n to_o those_o cutthroat_n that_o come_v with_o d._n juan_n d'austria_fw-la belg._n into_o the_o low_a country_n for_o to_o such_o be_v his_o indulgence_n grant_v give_v they_o indulgence_n and_o remission_n or_o absolution_n from_o their_o sin_n after_o confession_n and_o communion_n confession_n &_o communione_fw-la peracta_fw-la say_v gregory_n impetretis_fw-la omnium_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la vestrorum_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la o_o holy_a pope_n that_o grant_v pardon_n to_o such_o cutthroat_n o_o patch_n parson_n that_o know_v not_o the_o form_n of_o his_o holy_a father_n blessing_n wherefore_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o the_o idolatrous_a gentile_n that_o when_o they_o profess_v themselves_o wise_a they_o become_v 1._o fool_n so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o idolatrous_a heretic_n parson_n that_o while_o he_o profess_v himself_o a_o teacher_n of_o other_o he_o have_v show_v himself_o a_o ignorant_a do_v likewise_o as_o the_o heretic_n call_v gnostici_n profess_v themselves_o great_a clerk_n imperitiae_fw-la suae_fw-la nomen_fw-la scientiae_fw-la vendicantes_fw-la that_o be_v challenge_v to_o their_o ignorance_n the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o knowledge_n as_o hierome_n say_v in_o isaiae_n c._n 44._o so_o the_o illuminate_v jebusite_n profess_v art_n and_o learning_n and_o parson_n be_v as_o arrogant_a as_o the_o best_a of_o they_o but_o if_o he_o look_v down_o upon_o these_o so_o many_o and_o so_o gross_a error_n commit_v within_o one_o of_o his_o volume_n whatsoever_o he_o
the_o universal_a church_n then_o of_o one_o realm_n again_o we_o call_v the_o king_n supreme_a governor_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n then_o for_o that_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a man_n of_o his_o realm_n and_o chief_a disposer_n of_o external_a matter_n but_o they_o give_v one_o consistory_n to_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n furthermore_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o say_v all_o prince_n ought_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o docrine_n the_o pope_n will_v be_v equal_a to_o they_o if_o not_o above_o they_o and_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n as_o absolute_o as_o christ_n jesus_n final_o he_o say_v difference_n of_o habit_n or_o particular_a manner_n of_o life_n break_v not_o unity_n of_o religion_n but_o the_o apostle_n repzove_v those_o that_o say_v i_o hold_v of_o permit_v he_o forbid_v all_o exposition_n of_o it_o until_o it_o be_v examine_v let_v parson_n then_o show_v where_o he_o appoint_v or_o permit_v vulgar_a translation_n of_o scripture_n if_o he_o will_v not_o show_v himself_o a_o liar_n in_o the_o same_o encounter_n in_o set_v down_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n in_o report_v the_o act_n against_o husse_n the_o proceed_n of_o luther_n grinaeus_n and_o bezaes_n disputation_n he_o do_v nothing_o but_o cog_v and_o lie_v and_o for_o his_o witness_n he_o cit_v aeneas_n silvius_n dubravius_n cochleus_n genebrard_n surius_n claudius_n de_fw-fr saint_n and_o a_o rabble_n of_o other_o lie_a rascal_n not_o worth_a a_o cockle_n shell_n what_o then_o do_v he_o deserve_v but_o a_o crown_n of_o fox_n tail_n counterpoint_v with_o whetstone_n for_o his_o labour_n popelliniere_v in_o be_v seven_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o france_n show_v that_o the_o papist_n can_v never_o be_v bring_v to_o join_v issue_n do_v they_o of_o the_o religion_n what_o they_o can_v which_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o his_o shameless_a narration_n 2._o encounter_n fol._n 39_o he_o say_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n give_v liberty_n to_o all_o protestant_n so_o he_o call_v our_o doctor_n to_o dispute_v their_o fill_n a_o most_o notorious_a untruth_n for_o two_o only_o go_v thither_o escape_v hardly_o with_o their_o life_n and_o be_v peremptory_o deny_v licence_n to_o dispute_v public_o albeit_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v hear_v 2._o encount_n c._n 9_o he_o deny_v that_o the_o papist_n mean_v to_o keep_v their_o index_n expurgatorie_n secret_a and_o say_v that_o they_o be_v devise_v to_o purge_v book_n corrupt_v by_o heretic_n but_o experience_n do_v prove_v both_o to_o be_v lie_v for_o under_o this_o colour_n they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o father_n and_o this_o deccit_fw-la be_v not_o find_v until_o by_o god_n providence_n one_o copy_n come_v to_o junius_n his_o hand_n and_o this_o god_n willing_a shall_v be_v prove_v by_o particular_n if_o god_n grant_v we_o life_n fol._n 93._o he_o tell_v a_o story_n as_o he_o say_v or_o rather_o diverse_a lie_v of_o monk_n make_v hatchet_n to_o swim_v taise_v dead_a man_n to_o life_n multiply_v milk_n and_o talk_v of_o monk_n muy_n and_o do_v other_o strange_a miracle_n which_o if_o parson_n do_v compare_v with_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n he_o blaspheme_v if_o he_o believe_v as_o well_o as_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o bible_n he_o add_v no_o credit_n to_o monkish_a miracle_n but_o most_o wicked_o make_v legend_n and_o fable_n comparable_a to_o holy_a scripture_n fol._n 101._o he_o say_v sixtus_n 4._o do_v leave_v it_o free_a for_o every_o one_o to_o think_v what_o he_o will_v viz._n in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o our_o lady_n in_o original_a sin_n but_o that_o this_o be_v false_a it_o appear_v first_o in_o that_o he_o do_v excommunicate_v all_o those_o that_o speak_v against_o the_o feast_n of_o our_o lady_n conception_n and_o second_o for_o that_o he_o give_v indulgence_n to_o such_o as_o pray_v to_o she_o as_o bear_v of_o anna_n without_o original_a sin_n fol._n 103._o he_o deny_v that_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la compare_v the_o execrable_a murder_n of_o the_o french_a king_n henry_n the_o three_o to_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n his_o incarnation_n and_o resurrection_n but_o the_o cardinal_n that_o be_v in_o the_o consistory_n when_o first_o the_o news_n be_v bring_v to_o rome_n can_v convince_v he_o of_o lie_v and_o impudency_n likewise_o a_o french_a papist_n that_o write_v a_o discourse_n against_o sixtus_n quintus_n called_z la_fw-fr fulminante_fw-la will_v testify_v against_o he_o speak_v in_o a_o apostrophe_n to_o pope_n sixtus_n tuappelles_n say_v he_o ceste_fw-fr trahison_fw-fr un_fw-fr oewre_fw-fr grand_fw-fr de_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr un_fw-fr pour_fw-fr exploit_n de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr providence_n &_o la_fw-fr compare_v aux_fw-fr plus_fw-la excellens_fw-la mystery_n fulminante_fw-la de_fw-la son_n incarnation_n &_o de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr resurrection_n he_o charge_v 40._o he_o further_o that_o he_o account_v this_o murder_n as_o a_o miracle_n and_o 42._o honour_a james_n clement_n as_o a_o martyr_n dieu_fw-fr quelle_fw-fr pieté_fw-fr qu'un_fw-fr suiect_n qui_fw-fr tue_o son_fw-fr roy_fw-fr est_fw-fr à_fw-fr rome_n un_fw-fr martyr_n &_o son_n assassinat_fw-la un_fw-fr miracle_n parson_n seem_v also_o to_o deny_v that_o henry_n the_o three_o be_v excommunicate_a and_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o same_o be_v cause_n of_o his_o death_n both_o which_o point_n be_v testify_v in_o the_o discourse_n entitle_v la_fw-fr fulminante_fw-la which_o parson_n not_o see_v rove_v he_o know_v not_o at_o what_o tu_fw-la as_o proclamé_n say_v he_o speak_v to_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la un_fw-fr ban_fw-fr sur_fw-fr la_fw-fr vie_fw-fr &_o convié_fw-fr tous_fw-fr les_fw-fr parricide_n à_fw-fr sa_fw-fr mort_fw-fr how_o then_o can_v these_o word_n utter_v by_o a_o papist_n inveigh_v against_o sixtus_n quintus_n with_o any_o probability_n be_v deny_v fol._n 104._o he_o charge_v we_o with_o set_v forward_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o call_v new_a with_o forcible_a attempt_n but_o if_o he_o show_v not_o where_o we_o have_v take_v arm_n for_o this_o purpose_n these_o word_n will_v testify_v against_o he_o that_o he_o set_v forth_o lie_v and_o be_v a_o lie_a companion_n who_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o slander_n in_o france_n poor_a man_n have_v be_v force_v to_o take_v arm_n for_o defence_n of_o their_o life_n against_o the_o pope_n minister_n but_o they_o never_o seek_v the_o life_n or_o hurt_n of_o their_o king_n as_o the_o rebellious_a leaguer_n do_v who_o treacherous_o murder_v their_o sovereign_a lord_n and_o king_n fol._n 105._o 2._o encount_n c._n 12._o he_o deny_v that_o papist_n hold_v it_o sacrilege_n to_o dispute_v of_o the_o pope_n do_n and_o fol._n 107._o that_o albeit_o the_o pope_n lead_v innumerable_a soul_n to_o hell_n yet_o no_o man_n may_v say_v to_o he_o sir_n why_o do_v you_o so_o the_o first_o lie_n be_v confute_v by_o baldus_n in_o l._n sacrilegij_fw-la cod._n de_fw-fr crimine_fw-la sacrilegij_fw-la where_o in_o plain_a term_n he_o affrm_v that_o it_o be_v sacrilege_n to_o dispute_v of_o the_o pope_n power_n the_o second_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-la papa_n do_v 40._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o although_o the_o pope_n carry_v with_o he_o innumerable_a soul_n to_o hell_n yet_o no_o man_n may_v reprove_v he_o for_o his_o fault_n the_o word_n be_v plain_a huius_fw-la culpas_fw-la istic_fw-la redarguere_fw-la praesumit_fw-la mortalium_fw-la nemo_fw-la the_o same_o word_n also_o which_o parson_n deny_v be_v find_v in_o diverse_a canonist_n and_o that_o not_o understand_v in_o beneficiary_a cause_n only_o as_o he_o will_v insinuate_v but_o absolute_o per_fw-la omne_fw-la potest_fw-la facere_fw-la &_o dicere_fw-la quicquid_fw-la placet_fw-la say_v durand_n auferendo_fw-la etiam_fw-la ius_fw-la suum_fw-la cui_fw-la 89._o vult_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la ei_fw-la dicat_fw-la cur_n ita_fw-la facis_fw-la there_o also_o cite_v his_o author_n he_o say_v vicem_fw-la non_fw-la puri_fw-la hominis_fw-la sed_fw-la very_fw-la deigerit_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la likewise_o do_v 3._o de_fw-la poenit_fw-la c._n quamuis_fw-la where_o the_o text_n say_v quis_fw-la audeat_fw-la dicere_fw-la deo_fw-la quare_fw-la etc._n etc._n parcis_fw-la the_o gloss_n say_v well_fw-mi deo_fw-la vel_fw-la papae_fw-la the_o like_a say_n be_v find_v in_o baldus_n in_o praelud_n fend_v col._n 12_o &_o in_o l._n fin_n col._n 1._o in_o extr_n cod_n send_v rescind_n jason_n consil_n 145._o c._n 2._o v._n 2._o aemil_n mar._n nanoless_a and_o cap._n ad_fw-la apcstolatus_fw-la de_fw-la concess_n praebend_n extr_n joann_n 22._o gloss._n in_o verbo_fw-la continetur_fw-la fol._n 106._o he_o say_v that_o many_o of_o we_o and_o other_o our_o friend_n do_v make_v prince_n so_o absolute_a in_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a affair_n as_o they_o may_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o any_o mortal_a man_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o cit_v bellay_v but_o first_o bellay_n be_v none_o of_o our_o friend_n and_o next_o he_o can_v show_v any_o of_o we_o that_o teach_v
the_o slander_n of_o this_o noble_a earl_n he_o confess_v that_o if_o that_o action_n have_v take_v effect_n the_o pope_n authority_n will_v not_o have_v be_v still_o hold_v out_o by_o which_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o by_o the_o treachery_n of_o some_o hollow_a heart_a papist_n this_o noble_a earl_n be_v bring_v to_o destruction_n fol._n 9_o most_o impudent_o he_o affirm_v that_o nothing_o be_v answer_v to_o his_o discourse_n of_o emolument_n of_o toleration_n of_o popish_a religion_n and_o of_o the_o hurt_n that_o have_v come_v of_o alteration_n of_o religion_n as_o if_o popish_a religion_n be_v prove_v false_a idolatrous_a and_o disastrous_a to_o all_o kingdom_n all_o his_o discourse_n do_v not_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o this_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o such_o combatant_n to_o cry_v victory_n when_o they_o be_v beat_v out_o of_o the_o field_n likewise_o he_o cry_v out_o manifest_a untruth_n because_o sir_n francis_n say_v he_o be_v first_o call_v into_o the_o field_n by_o parson_n but_o as_o well_o may_v the_o thief_n say_v that_o the_o peaceable_a traveller_n that_o give_v warning_n to_o all_o to_o beware_v of_o théeve_n provoke_v the_o thief_n to_o set_v upon_o he_o the_o spaniard_n be_v ready_a to_o come_v for_o england_n sir_n francis_n give_v the_o alarm_n out_o come_v captain_n cowbucke_n like_o a_o cutthroat_n and_o set_v upon_o he_o in_o his_o wardword_n be_v it_o not_o he_o than_o that_o begin_v this_o brawl_n and_o do_v not_o he_o in_o favour_n of_o public_a enemy_n make_v himself_o ready_a to_o cut_v our_o throat_n fol._n 11._o he_o say_v my_o preface_n tend_v whole_o to_o bloodshed_n but_o this_o grievous_a accusation_n require_v some_o more_o proof_n than_o he_o bring_v notwithstanding_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o allege_v his_o first_o persuasion_n say_v he_o be_v by_o extol_v exceed_o she_o majesty_n extraordinary_a clemency_n as_o if_o the_o praise_n of_o a_o prince_n clemency_n be_v a_o persuasion_n to_o cruelty_n or_o as_o if_o parson_n commend_v pope_n clement_n clemency_n persuade_v he_o to_o rigour_n who_o ever_o hear_v such_o a_o witless_a speak_v another_o reason_n he_o imagine_v i_o to_o have_v draw_v from_o the_o meaning_n of_o papist_n but_o like_o a_o unskilful_a archer_n he_o neither_o hit_v my_o reason_n nor_o intention_n he_o be_v therefore_o to_o learn_v that_o my_o purpose_n be_v to_o arm_v her_o majesty_n againft_a parson_n and_o his_o consort_n treason_n and_o rather_o to_o secure_v the_o state_n then_o to_o use_v violence_n to_o any_o but_o such_o as_o by_o all_o mean_v oppugn_v the_o state_n and_o seek_v by_o treachery_n to_o undermine_v the_o state_n where_o i_o show_v that_o heretic_n idolater_n &_o traitor_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v &_o therefore_o factious_a papist_n he_o say_v thus_o to_o reason_n 14._o at_o random_n be_v much_o like_a to_o boy_n argument_v in_o sophistry_n and_o yet_o he_o with_o all_o his_o logic_n shall_v never_o answer_v this_o argument_n consider_v that_o i_o have_v prove_v robert_n parson_n and_o his_o consort_n to_o be_v heretic_n idolater_n and_o traitor_n nay_o w._n r._n in_o his_o clear_a confutation_n confess_v so_o much_o not_o answer_v ibidem_fw-la any_o of_o my_o argument_n but_o say_v he_o show_v i_o one_o example_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o christendom_n that_o ever_o man_n or_o woman_n in_o any_o age_n be_v punish_v as_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o christian_a common_a wealth_n for_o stick_v to_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o if_o i_o have_v not_o show_v that_o angelike_n carpocratian_o marcionist_n challenge_n manicheys_n prince-killing_a circumcellion_n and_o assassin_n pelagian_n collyridian_n crosse-worshipper_n and_o diverse_a other_o hold_v the_o same_o point_n which_o now_o the_o pope_n profess_v have_v be_v condemn_v and_o punish_v for_o heretic_n fol._n 15._o he_o cry_v out_o folly_n and_o impudence_n in_o prove_v that_o idolater_n and_o heretic_n be_v by_o law_n to_o be_v repress_v but_o he_o dissemble_v cunning_o whatsoever_o be_v otherwise_o bring_v by_o i_o to_o prove_v papist_n to_o be_v idolater_n and_o heretic_n he_o pass_v by_o also_o two_o greek_a sentence_n take_v out_o of_o euripides_n and_o aeschines_n for_o to_o he_o greek_a be_v of_o hard_a digestion_n final_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v of_o the_o papist_n for_o rail_v against_o the_o queen_n in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la anglicano_n set_v out_o under_o sanders_n his_o name_n and_o in_o other_o libel_n parson_n do_v whole_o omit_v and_o yet_o he_o make_v a_o show_n as_o if_o he_o will_v answer_v all_o writhing_z his_o face_n like_o a_o old_a ape_n swallow_v pill_n in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o note_v as_o he_o say_v a_o contradiction_n betwixt_o sir_n francis_n and_o i_o but_o the_o contradiction_n be_v in_o his_o understanding_n and_o not_o between_o us._n for_o neither_o will_v i_o nor_o he_o have_v simple_a papist_n punish_v with_o death_n which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o s._n augustine_n concern_v simple_a heretic_n nor_o do_v sir_n francis_n deny_v but_o that_o factious_a dogmatize_v and_o obstinate_a heretic_n ought_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n which_o both_o s._n augustine_n and_o i_o myself_o affirm_v fol._n 16._o b._n he_o give_v out_o that_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n rom._n 16._o where_o he_o will_v have_v such_o mark_v diligent_o as_o cause_v division_n and_o offence_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o roman_n have_v receive_v make_v direct_o against_o we_o and_o not_o against_o the_o papist_n but_o then_o he_o must_v show_v that_o we_o have_v forsake_v the_o doctrine_n preach_v to_o the_o roman_n and_o they_o not_o he_o must_v i_o say_v show_v that_o s._n paul_n teach_v that_o clernent_n the_o eight_o be_v the_o fpouse_n and_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v seven_o sacrament_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v corporal_o under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o in_o as_o many_o place_n as_o be_v the_o sacrament_n that_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n subsist_v without_o their_o substance_n that_o a_o christian_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n that_o latria_fw-la be_v due_a to_o the_o cross_n that_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v to_o saint_n after_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o such_o like_a point_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n or_o else_o he_o shall_v make_v a_o direct_a lie_n where_o he_o say_v these_o word_n make_v direct_o against_o us._n have_v rchearse_v the_o law_n cunctos_fw-la populos_fw-la cod_n de_fw-fr sum_n 17._o trin._n &_o fid_fw-we cath._n he_o cry_v out_o and_o will_v we_o to_o tell_v he_o whether_o the_o same_o touch_v not_o us._n but_o if_o we_o tell_v he_o true_a it_o will_v make_v little_a for_o his_o comfort_n for_o we_o neither_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n that_o be_v in_o damasus_n his_o time_n nor_o do_v we_o digress_v from_o the_o faith_n mention_v in_o that_o law_n which_o parson_n like_o a_o falsary_a cut_v out_o see_v it_o make_v not_o for_o his_o purpose_n but_o see_v true_a christian_n do_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n that_o now_o be_v why_o shall_v christian_n communicate_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o sect_n see_v they_o have_v embrace_v a_o number_n of_o novelty_n and_o heresy_n and_o publish_v they_o in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n which_o be_v unknown_a to_o damasus_n and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n long_o after_o his_o time_n fol._n 20._o he_o complain_v of_o injury_n offer_v by_o the_o watchword_n as_o a_o famous_a libel_n as_o well_o to_o great_a foreign_a prince_n and_o nation_n as_o to_o honourable_a worshipful_a and_o honest_a subject_n whereas_o whosoever_o read_v the_o book_n shall_v find_v that_o sir_n francis_n spcake_v only_o against_o foreign_a enemy_n and_o notorious_a traitor_n if_o then_o parson_n put_v his_o consort_n among_o they_o it_o be_v marvel_n they_o spit_v not_o in_o the_o rascal_n face_n and_o defy_v he_o again_o if_o sir_n francis_n be_v reprehend_v for_o write_v against_o foreign_a enemy_n and_o domestical_a traitor_n what_o do_v parson_n deserve_v that_o have_v set_v out_o sanders_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la allens_n wicked_a exhortation_n to_o the_o nobility_n and_o people_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n and_o diverse_a other_o libel_n to_o the_o disgrace_n of_o his_o liege_n sovereign_a and_o nation_n and_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o defence_n of_o public_a enemy_n and_o traitor_n fol._n 24._o he_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o knight_n fly_v the_o true_a combat_n &_o that_o he_o run_v behind_o the_o cloth_n of_o estate_n but_o in_o the_o first_o he_o show_v himself_o a_o false_a accuser_n in_o the_o second_o a_o vain_a bangler_n for_o the_o controversy_n arise_v about_o sir_n francis_n his_o discourse_n what_o be_v require_v at_o his_o
ro._n parson_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o wardword_n he_o answer_v nothing_o but_o in_o sad_a silence_n pass_v by_o only_o report_v my_o objection_n and_o say_v nothing_o unto_o they_o but_o where_o i_o be_o mistake_v he_o use_v not_o to_o conceal_v my_o error_n answer_v then_o no_o better_o be_v he_o not_o a_o béetlehead_n block_n think_v you_o to_o request_v his_o reader_n not_o to_o believe_v i_o in_o any_o thing_n for_o why_o shall_v not_o other_o believe_v i_o as_o well_o as_o himself_o that_o dare_v not_o contradict_v that_o which_o i_o say_v such_o answerer_n with_o we_o be_v hiss_v out_o of_o school_n where_o i_o say_v that_o thomas_n harding_n obtain_v a_o bull_n from_o the_o pope_n anno_fw-la 1569._o to_o exercise_n episcopal_a jurisdiction_n in_o england_n to_o dispense_v with_o irregularity_n and_o to_o receive_v all_o that_o will_v be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o pope_n he_o answer_v that_o b._n it_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o that_o d._n harding_n after_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o england_n to_o lovayne_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o her_o majesty_n reign_n come_v home_o to_o live_v in_o england_n again_o or_o to_o exercise_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n therein_o as_o if_o he_o may_v not_o obtain_v a_o bull_n from_o the_o pope_n without_o come_v into_o england_n and_o put_v the_o same_o in_o execution_n or_o as_o if_o he_o may_v not_o come_v into_o england_n unless_o his_o come_n be_v every_o where_o noise_v abroad_o or_o as_o if_o he_o may_v not_o come_v hither_o unless_o he_o come_v to_o live_v here_o again_o he_o answer_v further_a that_o there_o be_v bishop_n here_o in_o england_n and_o that_o every_o ordinary_a priest_n have_v power_n to_o reconcile_v man_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o dispense_v with_o irregularity_n but_o he_o know_v the_o bishop_n in_o england_n be_v depose_v and_o commit_v to_o prison_n so_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v well_o send_v some_o other_o over_o with_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n notwithstanding_o any_o thing_n they_o can_v do_v furthermore_o if_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o the_o cannon_n law_n he_o may_v know_v that_o neither_o priest_n nor_o bishop_n can_v without_o special_a faculty_n dispense_v with_o irregularity_n and_o reconcile_v such_o as_o the_o pope_n condemn_v for_o heretic_n as_o the_o canonist_n teach_v he_o 11._o que_fw-la 3._o si_fw-la quis_fw-la damnatus_fw-la &_o extr_n de_fw-mi send_v exc_fw-la cum_fw-la illorum_fw-la and_o speculator_n lib._n 1._o §_o de_fw-mi legato_fw-mi and_o diverse_a other_o place_n where_o they_o write_v of_o case_n reserve_v but_o what_o a_o ridiculous_a fellow_n be_v this_o to_o deny_v that_o harding_n have_v a_o bull_n for_o the_o purpose_n above_o write_v when_o the_o same_o be_v extant_a under_o the_o pope_n hand_n and_o seal_v and_o follow_v in_o these_o word_n noveritis_fw-la quod_fw-la anno_fw-la die_v mense_fw-la &_o pontificatu_fw-la infrascriptis_fw-la in_fw-la generali_fw-la congregatione_fw-la etc._n etc._n pro_fw-la parte_fw-la reverendorum_fw-la th._n harding_n &_o n._n s._n &_o t._n p._n anglorum_fw-la fuit_fw-la porrectum_fw-la memoriale_a &_o supplicatio_fw-la quae_fw-la lecta_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n annis_n abhinc_fw-la tribus_fw-la etc._n etc._n concessit_fw-la th._n h._n etc._n etc._n episcopalem_fw-la potestatem_fw-la in_fw-la foro_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la absoluendi_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gremium_fw-la revertentur_fw-la huic_fw-la potestati_fw-la quia_fw-la muliinon_fw-la credunt_fw-la petimus_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o scriptum_fw-la aliquod_fw-la authenticum_fw-la redigatur_fw-la ac_fw-la etiam_fw-la ulterius_fw-la monente_fw-la nos_fw-la temporis_fw-la necessitate_v humiliter_fw-la petimus_fw-la ut_fw-la eisdem_fw-la concedatur_fw-la in_o causa_fw-la irregularitatis_fw-la dispensandi_fw-la potestas_fw-la exceptis_fw-la ex_fw-la homicidio_fw-la voluntario_fw-la provenientibus_fw-la seu_fw-la deductis_fw-la in_o forum_n contentiosum_fw-la quibus_fw-la auditis_fw-la &_o intellectis_fw-la praelibatus_fw-la sanctissimus_fw-la dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la decrevit_fw-la quod_fw-la praenominati_fw-la absoluere_fw-la possint_fw-la in_o foro_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la anglos_n tantùm_fw-la prout_fw-la petitur_fw-la etiam_fw-la ab_fw-la irregulatitate_fw-la incursa_fw-la ratione_fw-la haeresis_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la ea_fw-la dependente_fw-la emergente_fw-la &_o annexa_fw-la dummodo_fw-la absoluendi_fw-la abstineant_fw-la per_fw-la triennium_fw-la à_fw-la ministerio_fw-la altaris_fw-la in_o quorum_fw-la fidem_fw-la &_o testimonium_fw-la &c._n &c._n anno_fw-la 1567._o die_v jovis_n 14._o augusti_fw-la etc._n etc._n afterward_o the_o notary_n subscription_n and_o form_n of_o absolution_n be_v set_v down_o where_o be_v than_o robert_n parson_n his_o honesty_n to_o shift_v off_o thing_n so_o notorious_a in_o my_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n i_o say_v that_o obstinate_a recusant_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n reconcile_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o adhere_v to_o foreign_a enemy_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o do_v enjoy_v their_o land_n and_o good_n and_o glad_o will_v ro._n parson_n answer_v somewhat_o but_o neither_o can_v he_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v reconcile_v for_o then_o the_o masspriest_n will_v not_o communicate_v with_o they_o nor_o that_o they_o adhere_v to_o foreign_a enemy_n for_o then_o in_o vain_a shall_v the_o adelantado_n presume_v of_o their_o help_n in_o his_o proclamation_n pen_v as_o it_o seem_v by_o english_a traitor_n nor_o can_v he_o deny_v they_o enjoy_v land_n and_o good_n for_o that_o be_v notorious_a what_o then_o do_v he_o forsooth_o he_o talk_v idle_o of_o the_o enjoy_n of_o my_o benefice_n and_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o certain_a masspriest_n of_o the_o which_o two_o the_o first_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o second_o be_v lewd_o reject_v without_o colour_n see_v every_o man_n confession_n be_v strong_a against_o himself_o and_o these_o man_n confession_n be_v in_o record_n be_v not_o light_o to_o be_v refuse_v in_o the_o same_o place_n i_o say_v that_o parson_n defend_v public_a enemy_n and_o traitor_n and_o seek_v the_o disgrace_n of_o the_o country_n and_o nation_n to_o all_o which_o he_o answer_v nothing_o but_o by_o tell_v a_o tale_n of_o prosecute_a papist_n which_o he_o term_v catholic_n as_o if_o such_o may_v play_v the_o traitor_n and_o join_v with_o public_a enemy_n open_o and_o lawful_o the_o papist_n be_v charge_v for_o maintain_v the_o word_n of_o hostiensis_n and_o panormitane_n that_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v able_a to_o do_v almost_o all_o thing_n which_o christ_n can_v do_v except_o sin_n he_o think_v to_o shift_v off_o the_o matter_n by_o speak_v with_o panormitan_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v all_o thing_n with_o the_o key_n of_o discretion_n b._n that_o err_v not_o but_o this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o presume_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v discretion_n and_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o in_o the_o determination_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v err_v whereas_o all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o the_o pope_n come_v into_o the_o church_n not_o with_o key_n but_o with_o pickelocke_n and_o pron_z bar_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o use_v the_o key_n as_o sword_n and_o club_n and_o that_o also_o without_o discretion_n or_o reason_n kill_v all_o that_o speak_v against_o his_o triple_a crown_n where_o i_o say_v that_o such_o english_a as_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o pope_n have_v renounce_v their_o obedience_n to_o the_o queen_n he_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n france_n poland_n 13._o and_o of_o the_o emperor_n that_o have_v not_o renounce_v their_o obedience_n to_o their_o prince_n but_o his_o shift_n be_v most_o ridiculous_a for_o the_o pope_n be_v enemy_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n and_o not_o to_o they_o but_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o pope_n happen_v to_o excommunicate_v any_o of_o these_o prince_n then_o be_v it_o clear_a that_o such_o subject_n as_o follow_v the_o pope_n can_v by_o any_o mean_n adhere_v to_o their_o lawful_a prince_n unless_o parson_n can_v show_v how_o a_o man_n can_v please_v two_o contrary_a master_n and_o can_v himself_o serve_v both_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n fol._n 28._o and_o 29._o he_o run_v out_o into_o a_o large_a exposition_n of_o these_o word_n of_o hostiensis_n and_o panormitan_n quòd_fw-la papa_n potest_fw-la quasi_fw-la omne_fw-la facere_fw-la quae_fw-la christus_fw-la excepto_fw-la peccato_fw-la but_o all_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o he_o shall_v show_v that_o these_o fellow_n do_v not_o flatter_v the_o pope_n and_o not_o tell_v we_o a_o tale_n of_o their_o foolery_n which_o as_o they_o be_v exorbitant_a so_o be_v they_o unpleasant_a in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v it_o be_v no_o more_o adsurditie_n to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v almost_o all_o that_o christ_n can_v except_o sin_n then_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n can_v do_v all_o that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n can_v do_v in_o that_o kingdom_n except_o be_v free_a from_o treason_n but_o first_o the_o word_n of_o hostiensis_n and_o panormitan_n import_v that_o christ_n can_v
in_o shift_v and_o conceal_v than_o he_o do_v deny_v dispute_v ita_fw-la opertus_fw-la ac_fw-la tectus_fw-la incedis_fw-la say_v hierom_n to_o one_o epist_n 6._o ut_fw-la plus_fw-la confitearis_fw-la tacendo_fw-la quam_fw-la renuas_fw-la disputando_fw-la this_o we_o may_v true_o say_v of_o parson_n that_o his_o shift_n and_o answer_n which_o he_o bring_v to_o cover_v the_o wound_n of_o his_o cause_n do_v make_v the_o matter_n far_o more_o suspicious_a than_o before_o what_o then_o be_v we_o to_o think_v of_o such_o a_o shift_a and_o juggle_a fellow_n will_v you_o hear_v parson_n give_v sentence_n in_o his_o own_o caúse_n if_o he_o do_v i_o hope_v you_o will_v say_v we_o do_v produce_v no_o witness_n that_o will_v deal_v partial_o in_o favour_n of_o our_o cause_n but_o he_o in_o his_o 2._o encon_n c._n 9_o fol._n 62._o say_v that_o he_o which_o use_v a_o trick_n of_o legierdemain_n but_o once_o of_o know_a and_o set_v malice_n to_o deceive_v be_v never_o to_o be_v trust_v again_o what_o then_o remain_v now_o but_o that_o such_o a_o shift_a &_o treacherous_a companion_n be_v rather_o truss_v then_o trust_v haltre_v then_o harbour_v bafful_v then_o believe_v chap._n xiii_o parson_n his_o patcheric_a in_o beg_v thing_n in_o controversy_n discover_v the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o adversary_n and_o often_o mention_v of_o controversy_n if_o nothing_o else_o i_o think_v may_v have_v move_v robert_n parson_n to_o look_v better_o to_o his_o proof_n and_o to_o have_v presume_v less_o of_o his_o beg_n for_o albeit_o he_o be_v of_o the_o ignatian_n sect_n and_o by_o profession_n a_o mendicant_a friar_n yet_o have_v he_o no_o reason_n to_o beg_v of_o his_o adversary_n nor_o to_o take_v as_o grant_v thing_n that_o hang_v in_o controversy_n nor_o have_v we_o cause_n to_o maintain_v of_o alm_n such_o vagrant_a sturdy_a rogue_v beggar_n as_o the_o law_n judge_v worthy_a of_o hang_v it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v stand_v upon_o term_n and_o swear_v like_o a_o hackster_n that_o he_o be_v no_o beggar_n bestow_v many_o thousand_o of_o crown_n upon_o spy_n and_o treatise_n cutthroat_n but_o the_o truth_n will_v appear_v by_o the_o sequel_n of_o his_o do_n fol._n 1._o b._n he_o accuse_v i_o of_o deportment_n against_o all_o kind_n of_o catholic_a man_n though_o never_o so_o learned_a virtuous_a worshipful_a or_o honourable_a but_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v himself_o &_o his_o traitorous_a consort_n which_o be_v the_o man_n that_o i_o do_v mean_a to_o be_v both_o catholic_n and_o learned_a virtuous_a worshipful_a and_o honourable_a we_o of_o the_o plain_a and_o simple_a sort_n can_v yet_o never_o learn_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n either_o honourable_a or_o commendable_a to_o betray_v his_o prince_n or_o country_n or_o to_o take_v part_n with_o italian_n or_o spaniard_n against_o his_o own_o nation_n fol._n 7._o talk_v of_o priest_n put_v to_o death_n in_o england_n he_o call_v they_o and_o other_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o say_v they_o suffer_v for_o ancient_a religion_n but_o we_o look_v for_o proof_n and_o not_o for_o bare_a and_o beggarly_a affirmation_n for_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n come_v never_o to_o depose_v prince_n from_o their_o throne_n nay_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v plain_o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o these_o massepriest_n as_o appear_v by_o record_n and_o by_o their_o confession_n and_o the_o pope_n faculty_n grant_v to_o they_o come_v for_o that_o purpose_n second_o we_o have_v prove_v in_o our_o challenge_n that_o their_o religion_n as_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o faith_n which_o we_o profess_v in_o england_n be_v neither_o catholic_a nor_o ancient_a last_o we_o have_v there_o also_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v culpable_a of_o treason_n and_o to_o have_v die_v for_o that_o &_o not_o for_o their_o religion_n though_o otherwise_o berry_n lousy_a and_o beggarly_a bellaco_n and_o as_o beggarly_a defend_v by_o this_o beg_n and_o cousine_v companion_n in_o the_o same_o leaf_n also_o he_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o masspriest_n captain_n and_o master_n and_o that_o he_o assure_v they_o on_o his_o honour_n and_o power_n that_o no_o one_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n shall_v perish_v in_o the_o end_n he_o doubt_v not_o to_o call_v they_o martyr_n but_o to_o prove_v his_o matter_n he_o allege_v neither_o testimony_n ofscripture_n nor_o sentence_n of_o father_n nay_o where_o that_o romish_a church_n teach_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a of_o his_o salvation_n without_o special_a revelation_n yet_o this_o disciple_n of_o antichrist_n affirm_v that_o christ_n upon_o his_o honour_n have_v assure_v campian_n ballard_n babington_n and_o i_o think_v lopez_n too_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o perish_v for_o of_o these_o i_o think_v he_o speak_v to_o show_v they_o to_o be_v no_o martyr_n i_o have_v allege_v diverse_a reason_n reason_n then_o will_v that_o if_o he_o will_v have_v win_v credit_n he_o shall_v have_v either_o answer_v our_o reason_n or_o prove_v his_o own_o cause_n by_o argument_n in_o his_o observation_n upon_o my_o preface_n and_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o his_o book_n he_o give_v the_o name_n of_o cathonlike_n to_o papist_n and_o yet_o he_o know_v that_o this_o be_v a_o main_a controversy_n betwixt_o us._n what_o punishment_n then_o do_v he_o deserve_v that_o witting_o and_o wilful_o will_v beg_v or_o rather_o steal_v that_o which_o belong_v not_o unto_o he_o fol._n 14._o most_o impudent_o he_o give_v the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a christian_a church_n and_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o christ_n commonwealth_n unto_o papist_n that_o be_v neither_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o part_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o we_o he_o give_v the_o title_n of_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o lutheran_n which_o we_o renounce_v profess_v only_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n jesus_n he_o do_v also_o match_v we_o with_o arrian_n and_o other_o sect_n which_o we_o detest_v but_o these_o be_v point_n in_o controversy_n to_o be_v prove_v fol._n 17._o he_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v gather_v by_o like_a authority_n as_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n be_v a_o matter_n utter_o deny_v by_o we_o and_o not_o any_o way_n prove_v by_o he_o nay_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o compare_v that_o reverend_a synod_n assemble_v and_o moderate_v by_o the_o emperor_n authority_n and_o proceed_v according_a to_o scripture_n to_o a_o conventicle_n of_o slave_n swear_v to_o antichrist_n and_o assemble_v by_o his_o writ_n and_o do_v all_o according_a to_o his_o pleasure_n fol._n 20._o a._n he_o say_v it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o any_o one_o pope_n impugn_a his_o predecessor_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o all_o our_o plead_n be_v not_o that_o the_o late_a pope_n do_v impugn_v and_o overthrow_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o also_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o agatho_n condemn_v his_o predecessor_n honorius_n for_o a_o monothelite_n in_o the_o same_o place_n also_o affirm_v that_o all_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n from_o john_n the_o first_o to_o leo_n the_o ten_o hold_v one_o faith_n he_o say_v that_o this_o demonstration_n be_v as_o clear_v as_o that_o three_o and_o four_o make_v seven_o but_o this_o seven_o and_o seven_o year_n he_o shall_v never_o prove_v that_o which_o with_o a_o light_n finger_fw-la he_o take_v as_o grant_v &_o be_v clear_o false_a for_o the_o instruction_n give_v to_o the_o armenian_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o florence_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n be_v never_o hold_v of_o pope_n before_o they_o nor_o do_v former_a pope_n believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n fol._n 77._o b._n he_o take_v as_o grant_v that_o a_o hundred_o have_v be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o be_v priest_n and_o for_o be_v ordain_v to_o that_o function_n beyond_o the_o sea_n and_o for_o defend_v the_o faith_n belong_v to_o that_o function_n and_o that_o great_a number_n be_v daily_o apprehend_v arraign_v and_o condemn_v for_o stand_v in_o their_o father_n faith_n and_o resist_a novelty_n both_o which_o be_v notorious_a untruth_n for_o neither_o in_o the_o arraignment_n of_o priest_n or_o other_o be_v any_o question_n make_v of_o faith_n nor_o be_v that_o lousy_a patch_a religion_n that_o papist_n hold_v over_o and_o above_o our_o faith_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o father_n nor_o be_v priest_n execute_v simple_o for_o be_v priest_n but_o because_o they_o come_v from_o foreign_a enemy_n and_o be_v combine_v with_o they_o which_o always_o have_v be_v account_v treason_n fol._n 80._o he_o talk_v idle_o of_o send_v money_n out_o of_o england_n for_o defence_n of_o heresy_n for_o he_o beg_v of_o we_o that_o which_o he_o shall_v never_o obtain_v that_o popery_n be_v religion_n and_o true_a religion_n heresy_n and_o that_o we_o maintain_v heresy_n fol._n 104._o
rebel_n destroy_v these_o murderer_n and_o burn_v these_o sodomite_n and_o hang_v up_o these_o traitor_n of_o the_o king_n and_o realm_n and_o this_o they_o say_v of_o the_o friar_n but_o wickleffe_n always_o detest_v and_o speak_v both_o against_o such_o abomination_n and_o such_o rebellion_n it_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n also_o of_o papist_n to_o prove_v their_o doctrine_n with_o lie_n &_o fable_n to_o prove_v transubstantiation_n they_o make_v a_o crucifix_n to_o speak_v these_o word_n benè_fw-la de_fw-la i_o scripsisti_fw-la thoma_n thou_o have_v write_v well_o of_o i_o thomas_n when_o shall_v i_o be_v able_a to_o requite_v you_o for_o your_o pain_n to_o prove_v the_o real_a presence_n they_o make_v tale_n of_o blood_n appear_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o sometime_o they_o say_v christ_n appear_v like_o a_o little_a child_n which_o be_v toy_n to_o mock_v child_n withal_o to_o prove_v purgatory_n they_o tell_v we_o tale_n of_o s._n patrick_n purgatory_n of_o soul_n complain_v and_o cry_v for_o more_o mass_n of_o apparition_n of_o angel_n devil_n and_o soul_n the_o same_o lie_v they_o abuse_v also_o to_o prove_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o the_o justification_n of_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o worship_n of_o saint_n and_o their_o image_n they_o tell_v lie_v of_o image_n move_v talk_a work_a walk_a and_o of_o wonderful_a apparition_n and_o miracle_n do_v by_o they_o our_o lady_n image_n be_v say_v to_o speak_v to_o hiaciullyus_fw-la goodrike_v see_v a_o boy_n come_v out_o of_o a_o crucifix_n mouth_n as_o matthew_n paris_n relate_v final_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o agent_n without_o lie_n and_o notorious_a forgery_n cannòt_v maintain_v their_o cause_n as_o by_o infinite_a lie_n of_o bellarmine_n baronius_n parson_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o i_o have_v justify_v do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o in_o lie_v they_o have_v set_v up_o their_o rest_n and_o will_v not_o challenge_n the_o world_n see_v the_o abomination_n of_o popery_n that_o can_v be_v maintain_v but_o by_o lie_v forgery_n and_o force_n god_n grant_v that_o truth_n may_v once_o appear_v and_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o they_o may_v see_v that_o which_o now_o lie_v hide_v and_o come_v to_o the_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o truth_n a_o advertisement_n to_o the_o reader_n concern_v four_o other_z infamous_a libel_n late_o diwlge_v and_o send_v into_o england_n by_o parson_n kellison_n and_o walpoole_n before_o the_o fornter_v answer_n can_v be_v finish_v and_o publish_v there_o come_v to_o my_o hand_n four_o other_o book_n all_o pen_a by_o our_o malicious_a adversary_n and_o send_v over_o from_o rome_n and_o other_o place_n into_o england_n to_o disturne_v simple_a people_n from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o which_o i_o have_v think_v good_a most_o christian_a reader_n here_o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o work_n brief_o to_o advertise_v thou_o i_o hope_v also_o that_o the_o same_o advertisement_n will_v serve_v for_o present_a satisfaction_n to_o those_o which_o percase_o expect_v a_o speedy_a answer_n to_o such_o hastic_a calumniation_n and_o most_o wicked_a libel_n the_o first_o be_v set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o t._n f._n alias_o thomas_n fitzherbert_n a_o man_n evil_n report_v of_o by_o his_o own_o comfort_n and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n if_o hateful_a to_o all_o man_n well_o affect_v to_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n long_o he_o have_v be_v a_o spy_n and_o pensioner_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n but_o now_o perceive_v belike_o that_o the_o trade_n be_v become_v odious_a &_o grow_v out_o of_o request_n he_o be_v turn_v mass_n priest_n and_o set_v to_o sing_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o friend_n after_o three_o farthing_n a_o mass_n and_o lest_o he_o may_v forget_v his_o old_a art_n of_o spiery_a he_o be_v now_o set_v to_o spy_v for_o his_o holy_a father_n if_o by_o any_o good_a adventure_n he_o can_v see_v christ_n true_a body_n lurk_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o masse-cake_n his_o blood_n by_o a_o necessary_a concomitance_n as_o they_o say_v be_v not_o far_o off_o this_o fellow_n as_o a_o mass-priest_n be_v think_v a_o fit_a person_n to_o speak_v for_o the_o mass_n and_o as_o a_o spy_n and_o renegade_n englishman_n to_o speak_v shame_n of_o his_o country_n and_o to_o defend_v traitor_n and_o yet_o the_o poor_a man_n be_v as_o fit_a to_o dispute_v of_o the_o mass_a religion_n and_o popish_a subtlety_n as_o a_o ass_n to_o play_v a_o anthem_n upon_o a_o pair_n of_o organ_n the_o true_a author_n of_o the_o book_n as_o his_o stile_n declare_v and_o the_o dealer_n in_o the_o edition_n must_v needs_o witness_v be_v robert_n parson_n a_o old_a hackster_n in_o missifical_a quarrel_n and_o a_o great_a dealer_n in_o matter_n of_o conversion_n of_o england_n and_o one_o that_o use_v at_o his_o pleasure_n to_o borrow_v other_o man_n name_n now_o call_v himself_o captain_n cowbucke_n now_o dolman_n now_o john_n houlet_n now_o n._n d._n or_o noddy_n now_o t._n f._n or_o tom_n fop_n now_o robert_n parson_n under_o the_o name_n of_o dolman_n he_o set_v out_o his_o traitorous_a &_o seditious_a book_n of_o succession_n in_o disgrace_n of_o the_o king_n title_n under_o the_o name_n of_o john_n houlet_n he_o publish_v certain_a idle_a reason_n of_o refusal_n himself_o never_o refuse_v to_o attempt_v any_o mischief_n against_o the_o state_n under_o the_o title_n of_o n._n d._n he_o set_v out-his_a wardword_n and_o warneword_n stigmatise_v his_o manship_n with_o the_o perpetual_a note_n of_o a_o noddy_n imply_v by_o those_o two_o letter_n n._n d._n and_o this_o course_n he_o take_v in_o t._n f._n his_o apology_n the_o second_o be_v entitle_v a_o treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n of_o england_n and_o be_v set_v out_o by_o robert_n parson_n also_o under_o the_o old_a stamp_n of_o n._n d._n who_o signification_n every_o child_n now_o know_v to_o be_v noddy_n but_o why_o he_o shall_v write_v of_o the_o conversion_n of_o his_o country_n to_o religion_n we_o can_v see_v no_o reason_n see_v we_o have_v know_v he_o always_o more_o studious_a of_o the_o subversion_n then_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o england_n and_o his_o consort_n the_o mass_n priest_n do_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v a_o machiavelian_a pack_v fellow_n boyd_v of_o religion_n and_o honesty_n the_o turn_n of_o the_o mass_n or_o turn_v of_o jacket_n have_v be_v a_o more_o fit_a subject_n for_o he_o to_o handle_v see_v he_o furn_v &_o skip_v so_o oft_o about_o the_o altar_n like_o a_o ape_n dance_v about_o a_o maypole_n and_o have_v turn_v his_o coat_n so_o often_o from_o english_a to_o romish_a from_o scottish_a to_o spanish_a from_o all_o to_o french_a that_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n fear_v unless_o he_o turn_v cardinal_n that_o he_o will_v turn_v turk_n the_o three_o be_v call_v a_o survey_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n and_o be_v devise_v by_o a_o renegued_a fugitive_n englishman_n who_o have_v survey_v diverse_a other_o country_n and_o yet_o never_o find_v any_o settlement_n in_o his_o brain_n or_o habitation_n like_a cain_n he_o have_v be_v long_o a_o vagrant_a fugitive_n fellow_n vagus_fw-la &_o profugus_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la and_o seek_v if_o not_o to_o kill_v yet_o to_o slander_v his_o countryman_n and_o friend_n impute_v unto_o they_o most_o horrible_a opinion_n and_o crime_n it_o rest_v then_o that_o we_o set_v upon_o he_o a_o mark_n as_o upon_o cain_n that_o every_o man_n may_v know_v he_o for_o a_o suppost_n of_o satan_n although_o herein_o we_o need_v not_o much_o to_o travel_v see_v the_o first_o letter_n of_o kellisons_n name_n who_o father_v this_o monstrous_a mooncalf_n be_v k._n and_o the_o man_n be_v note_v among_o his_o companion_n for_o a_o great_a quareller_n about_o his_o commons_o the_o poor_a fellow_n be_v but_o a_o kettle_n doctor_n or_o rather_o a_o tinker_n of_o break_a school_n distinction_n and_o a_o professor_n rather_o than_o a_o performer_n of_o any_o divine_a learning_n the_o fellow_n talk_v idle_o of_o new_a religion_n but_o neither_o do_v he_o know_v what_o be_v new_a nor_o what_o be_v old_a nor_o what_o belong_v to_o religion_n that_o take_v popery_n for_o religion_n and_o esteem_v the_o mass_n and_o decretalive_a doctrine_n which_o this_o church_n of_o england_n refuse_v to_o be_v ancient_a and_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n which_o we_o profess_v to_o be_v new_a the_o four_o be_v term_v a_o brief_a and_o clear_a confutation_n of_o a_o new_a vain_a and_o vaunt_a challenge_n and_o be_v direct_v against_o a_o treatise_n set_v out_o some_o two_o or_o three_o year_n ago_o by_o i_o wherein_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o masspriest_n and_o their_o adherent_n be_v neither_o catholic_n nor_o good_a christian_n but_o so_o learned_o and_o wise_o have_v the_o author_n of_o this_o braggart_n confutation_n handle_v the_o matter_n that_o his_o good_a
the_o modern_a romish_a religion_n be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o ancient_a christian_a religion_n but_o his_o negative_a ridiculous_a proof_n be_v deny_v his_o affirmative_a be_v rather_o a_o bare_a affirmation_n then_o a_o proof_n for_o first_o against_o his_o negative_a we_o offer_v to_o prove_v that_o not_o only_o the_o point_n of_o romish_a doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n refuse_v be_v bring_v in_o long_a after_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o also_o that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n but_o suppose_v we_o know_v no_o original_n of_o some_o of_o the_o romish_a heresy_n be_v they_o therefore_o no_o heresy_n be_v idolatry_n no_o idolatry_n because_o the_o first_o beginning_n thereof_o be_v not_o know_v or_o be_v the_o angelike_n archontike_n crosse-worpers_a nadipedal_n monothelite_n and_o diverse_a other_o heretic_n true_a catholic_n because_o the_o papist_n can_v show_v who_o first_o broach_v these_o heresy_n second_o albeit_o the_o magdeburginn_v and_o some_o other_o learned_a man_n find_v fault_n with_o some_o term_n use_v by_o the_o father_n as_o of_o sacrifice_n altar_n priest_n purgatory_n freewill_n and_o some_o other_o yet_o that_o show_v not_o either_o that_o all_o the_o father_n use_v these_o term_n or_o that_o any_o of_o those_o that_o use_v they_o consent_v with_o the_o papist_n which_o from_o new_a term_n be_v grow_v to_o new_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n beside_o that_o parson_n disputcth_v ridiculous_o which_o ascribe_v the_o particular_a and_o private_a opinion_n of_o some_o one_o or_o few_o among_o we_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o himself_o albeit_o he_o affirm_v many_o thing_n desperate_o will_v not_o yield_v be_v this_o point_n against_o his_o own_o consort_n so_o we_o see_v parson_n his_o whole_a treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n easy_o subucrt_v in_o three_o word_n and_o with_o the_o turn_n of_o a_o hand_n the_o second_o part_n of_o parson_n his_o treatise_n wherein_o he_o pretend_v to_o make_v search_n for_o the_o religion_n profess_v in_o england_n be_v whole_o without_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o title_n of_o three_o conversiens_n so_o simple_a be_v he_o in_o his_o choice_n that_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v a_o title_n to_o fit_v his_o fantastical_a work_n beside_o that_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v blind_a that_o can_v not_o find_v our_o religion_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o thousand_o pear_n after_o christ_n and_o long_o after_o for_o there_o be_v no_o point_n or_o article_n of_o faith_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o receive_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o any_o ancient_a and_o lawful_a council_n but_o we_o receive_v it_o and_o embrace_v it_o nor_o do_v we_o profess_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o the_o nicene_n and_o other_o ancient_a counsel_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o also_o together_o with_o we_o receive_v and_o profess_v while_o therefore_o the_o lightheaded_a friar_n run_v post_v through_o all_o age_n and_o pretend_v to_o inquire_v for_o news_n of_o our_o church_n which_o ho_o might_n see_v if_o he_o will_v in_o all_o place_n he_o resemble_v much_o that_o wise_a fellow_n that_o can_v not_o see_v wood_n for_o tree_n neither_o be_v it_o material_a that_o in_o ancient_a time_n he_o find_v no_o opposition_n make_v against_o the_o pope_n primacy_n or_o universal_a power_n or_o to_o the_o mass_n or_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o carnal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o 7._o sacrament_n purgatory_n indulgence_n &_o such_o like_a for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v most_o ridiculous_a to_o make_v search_n for_o opposition_n against_o popish_a doctrine_n &_o heresy_n before_o the_o same_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o world_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o any_o begin_v to_o challenge_v the_o name_n of_o ecumenical_a or_o universal_a bishop_n gregory_n the_o first_o challenge_v he_o for_o it_o as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n allow_v after_o a_o sort_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a though_o not_o in_o such_o gross_a manner_n as_o now_o be_v oppugn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o francford_n in_o the_o time_n of_o charlemagne_n the_o carnal_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o believe_v by_o gregory_n the_o 7._o as_o beno_n report_v and_o be_v both_o they_o and_o afterward_o dislike_v by_o many_o transubstantiation_n be_v dispute_v against_o by_o the_o schoolman_n all_o the_o eastern_a church_n spurn_v against_o the_o pope_n headship_n his_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n neither_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o these_o corruption_n do_v the_o albigense_n valdense_n wiclephians_n and_o bohemian_n as_o they_o be_v call_v together_o with_o diverse_a other_o cease_v to_o exclaim_v against_o these_o popish_a abuse_n but_o say_v parson_n these_o do_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n agree_v with_o us._n yet_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o wrong_v they_o and_o us._n if_o of_o ceremony_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o all_o church_n shall_v agree_v in_o all_o point_n furthermore_o if_o the_o adversary_n have_v not_o calmnious_o lay_v diverse_a imputation_n of_o heresy_n upon_o they_o which_o they_o never_o hold_v the_o variation_n will_v not_o have_v seem_v so_o great_a as_o they_o pretend_v wherefore_o if_o robert_n parson_n seek_v no_o better_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o he_o will_v find_v a_o cardinal_n hat_n which_o as_o his_o friend_n charge_v he_o he_o have_v long_o seek_v this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o that_o which_o be_v material_a in_o robert_n parson_n his_o treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n the_o rest_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o froth_n of_o the_o man_n fury_n and_o foolery_n and_o contain_v only_o certain_a idle_a invective_n against_o m._n fox_n that_o good_a man_n &_o against_o m._n bale_n &_o other_o honest_a christian_n together_o with_o certain_a fond_a tale_n of_o king_n alphred_n dream_n &_o s._n cutberts_n apparition_n &_o such_o like_a wooden_a &_o popish_a stuff_n draw_v out_o of_o lie_a legend_n he_o forget_v not_o also_o to_o rail_v against_o our_o noble_a queen_n late_o decease_v and_o to_o call_v her_o old_a persecutor_n and_o to_o lay_v a_o aspersion_n of_o slander_n upon_o the_o state_n as_o if_o the_o same_o do_v persecute_v papist_n for_o religion_n a_o matter_n of_o which_o the_o secular_a masspriest_n be_v ashamed_a and_o stick_v not_o to_o clear_v those_o whem_o this_o convertible_a proteus_n most_o unjust_o charge_v final_o his_o fardel_n of_o waste_a paper_n contain_v diverse_a corruption_n and_o depravation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n miss-allegation_n of_o father_n weak_a collection_n gross_a error_n rebellious_a position_n notorious_a lie_n and_o calumiation_n which_o in_o a_o large_a treatise_n hereafter_o be_v to_o be_v discover_v k._n kellison_n survey_v if_o any_o man_n list_v to_o survey_v and_o peruse_v a_o certain_a slanderous_a and_o rail_a companion_n libel_v entitle_v caluinoturcismus_n and_o with_o hatred_n more_o than_o turkish_n to_o christian_n religion_n set_v out_o by_o gifford_n of_o lile_n will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v whole_o steal_v out_o from_o thence_o albeit_o he_o yield_v no_o thanks_o to_o those_o from_o whence_o he_o borrow_v or_o rather_o steal_v his_o invention_n this_o plagiary_n therefore_o need_v no_o other_o answer_n then_o that_o which_o be_v already_o make_v to_o giffords_n turkey_n work_v call_v caluinoturcismus_n it_o seem_v the_o man_n be_v at_o a_o stand_n for_o albeit_o gifford_n hate_v religion_n like_o a_o turk_n yet_o he_o answer_v no_o more_o then_o if_o by_o virtue_n of_o parson_n his_o three_o conversion_n he_o be_v turn_v into_o a_o mute_a turbot_n this_o k._n also_o of_o his_o own_o have_v add_v a_o gloze_a and_o flatter_a epistle_n to_o the_o king_n a_o certain_a preface_n concern_v inanimate_a and_o unreasonable_a creature_n percase_o like_o the_o arcadian_a beast_n of_o douai_n and_o certain_a fragment_n &_o old_a end_n of_o diverse_a stale_a declamation_n make_v as_o it_o seem_v at_o the_o drink_n out_o of_o a_o pot_n of_o rhenish_a wine_n his_o scholar_n i_o hear_v gape_v and_o wonder_v at_o his_o horrible_a eloquence_n but_o yet_o the_o wise_a of_o they_o see_v that_o they_o have_v no_o affinity_n with_o his_o purpose_n and_o only_o serve_v to_o fringe_n his_o chapter_n like_v as_o musty_a end_n of_o mockado_n serve_v to_o stitch_v his_o jacket_n of_o perpetuana_n all_o the_o whole_a amount_v to_o nothing_o save_v to_o declare_v the_o man_n to_o be_v a_o perpetual_a railer_n and_o a_o most_o sottish_a declaimer_n the_o idle_a fellow_n in_o all_o his_o scurvy_a collection_n which_o he_o like_v a_o surveyor_n without_o commission_n have_v make_v to_o little_a purpose_n do_v neither_o show_n wisdom_n nor_o modesty_n nor_o learning_n if_o the_o fellow_n have_v be_v wise_a he_o